and_o 3._o from_o whence_o we_o look_v for_o our_o saviour_n even_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n phi._n all_o the_o place_n which_o be_v yet_o allege_v against_o you_o you_o have_v shyft_v off_o by_o refer_v the_o speech_n to_o christ_n himself_o sit_v in_o heaven_n and_o as_o you_o say_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o theodoret_n word_n be_v so_o clear_a that_o no_o shift_n will_v derue_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o very_a mystical_a sign_n and_o sacrament_n which_o be_v see_v with_o eye_n and_o touch_v with_o hand_n 2._o and_o of_o they_o he_o say_v intelliguntur_fw-la ea_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o creduntur_fw-la &_o adorantur_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la illâ_n sint_fw-la quae_fw-la creduntuâ_n the_o sacrament_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v &_o be_v believe_v and_o adore_v as_o be_v the_o same_o which_o they_o be_v believe_v theo._n theodoret_n only_o theodoret_n of_o all_o the_o father_n that_o ever_o mention_a adoration_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n itself_o the_o rest_n direct_v their_o word_n to_o christ_n reign_v in_o glory_n not_o to_o the_o host_n or_o chalice_n in_o the_o priest_n hand_n he_o in_o deed_n speak_v of_o the_o mystical_a sign_n which_o the_o rest_n do_v not_o philand_n then_o yet_o there_o be_v one_o father_n for_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n you_o say_v we_o have_v none_o theo._n will_v you_o prove_v so_o high_a a_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o this_o be_v to_o be_v catholic_a by_o one_o only_a father_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o you_o think_v not_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v a_o saint_n phi._n these_o exception_n be_v but_o dilatory_a and_o quite_o beside_o the_o matter_n honour_n do_v you_o grant_v that_o he_o say_v the_o mystical_a sign_n must_v be_v adore_v theo._n he_o say_v so_o philand_n and_o such_o upstart_n as_o you_o be_v will_v be_v credit_v against_o he_o when_o you_o say_v the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o to_o be_v adore_v theoph._n we_o reason_v not_o about_o our_o credit_n but_o about_o your_o conclusion_n philand_n that_o be_v too_o plain_a for_o your_o store_n theo._n why_o do_v you_o then_o conceal_v it_o so_o long_o phi._n pretty_o you_o shall_v soon_o hear_v it_o and_o have_v your_o belly_n full_a of_o it_o the_o mystical_a token_n be_v adore_v say_v that_o ancient_a father_n theodorete_n mark_v now_o how_o nimble_o we_o come_v within_o you_o &_o overthrow_v you_o in_o plain_a field_n if_o you_o deny_v it_o we_o have_v here_o antiquity_n for_o it_o if_o you_o grant_v it_o then_o be_v you_o worse_o than_o miscreant_n for_o hold_v all_o this_o while_n against_o it_o theo._n with_o such_o weapon_n i_o think_v alexander_n the_o great_a do_v conquer_v the_o world_n phi._n when_o you_o come_v to_o a_o non_fw-la plus_fw-la than_o you_o fall_v to_o idle_a talk_n but_o leave_v digress_v and_o give_v we_o a_o short_a and_o direct_a answer_n which_o we_o know_v for_o your_o heart_n you_o can_v not_o theo._n you_o know_v much_o but_o if_o you_o know_v yourselves_o and_o your_o own_o weakness_n it_o be_v better_o phi._n do_v i_o not_o tell_v you_o this_o place_n will_v overthrow_v you_o theo._n because_o he_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n must_v be_v adore_v phi._n he_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n adore_v but_o the_o mystical_a token_n must_v be_v adore_v and_o what_o be_v the_o mystical_a token_n but_o the_o mystery_n themselves_o which_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n can_v you_o take_v the_o top_n and_o the_o tail_n and_o leave_v out_o the_o middle_a so_o cunning_o phi._n we_o leave_v out_o nothing_o theo._n theodoret_n word_n be_v 2._o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la sigra_fw-la mystica_fw-la post_fw-la sanctificationem_fw-la recedunt_fw-la a_o sva_fw-la natura_fw-la manent_fw-la enâm_fw-la in_o priore_fw-la substantia_fw-la &_o figura_fw-la &_o forma_fw-la &_o videri_fw-la &_o taâgi_fw-la possunt_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o prius_fw-la intelliguntur_fw-la antem_fw-la ea_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o creduâtur_fw-la &_o adorantur_fw-la ut_fw-la quae_fw-la illa_fw-la sint_fw-la quae_fw-la creduntur_fw-la the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o consecration_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o their_o own_o nature_n for_o they_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n and_o figure_n and_o form_n and_o may_v be_v see_v and_o touch_v as_o they_o be_v before_o but_o they_o be_v understand_v to_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v make_v and_o be_v believe_v and_o adore_v as_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v believe_v the_o mystical_a sign_n otherwise_o not_o depart_v from_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n be_v adore_v by_o this_o you_o may_v prove_v if_o you_o be_v so_o dispose_v that_o the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n must_v be_v adoren_n which_o perhaps_o in_o your_o church_n be_v no_o fault_n because_o it_o be_v so_o often_o but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n abhor_v it_o as_o a_o wicked_a impiety_n to_o adore_v any_o dead_a or_o dumb_a creature_n and_o therefore_o you_o must_v be_v drive_v as_o well_o as_o we_o to_o seek_v for_o a_o other_o and_o far_a meaning_n in_o theodorete_n otherwise_o you_o will_v shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o your_o own_o faith_n with_o your_o own_o antiquity_n more_o than_o you_o shall_v do_v we_o our_o answer_n be_v easy_a âeveâenced_v the_o mystical_a sign_n he_o say_v be_v adore_v but_o not_o with_o divine_a honour_n and_o adoration_n with_o the_o grecian_n as_o also_o with_o the_o scripture_n when_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o mortal_a man_n or_o creature_n signify_v only_o a_o reverend_a regard_n of_o their_o place_n or_o use_n your_o own_o law_n say_v cultu_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la sensu_fw-la possumus_fw-la quamlibet_fw-la rem_fw-la sacram_fw-la adorare_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la reverentiam_fw-la exhibere_fw-la in_o this_o sense_n we_o may_v adore_v any_o sacred_a thing_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v give_v it_o due_a reverence_n so_o that_o you_o utter_o overthrow_v both_o your_o adoration_n and_o your_o transubstantiation_n when_o you_o bring_v theodorete_a to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v adore_v that_o be_v reverence_v and_o yet_o remain_v after_o consecration_n for_o if_o it_o remain_v what_o adore_v you_o but_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o dead_a creature_n thing_n and_o that_o if_o you_o do_v how_o many_o step_n be_v you_o from_o open_a idolatry_n thus_o though_o we_o crake_v not_o of_o our_o conquest_n as_o you_o do_v we_o return_v your_o authority_n for_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n as_o either_o impertinent_a or_o insufficient_a &_o give_v we_o cause_n to_o consider_v that_o your_o worship_v it_o with_o divine_a honour_n be_v no_o catholic_a or_o ancient_a verity_n but_o a_o pernicious_a and_o wicked_a novelty_n phil._n be_v it_o wickedness_n to_o worship_n christ_n theop._n you_o defile_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n presence_n &_o spoil_v he_o of_o his_o worship_n by_o give_v they_o both_o to_o senseless_a creature_n phi._n how_o often_o shall_v we_o beat_v this_o into_o your_o dull_a head_n that_o we_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o senseless_a creature_n theo._n and_o how_o often_o shall_v we_o ring_v this_o into_o your_o deaf_a ear_n presence_n that_o the_o sacrament_n in_o corporal_a matter_n and_o substance_n be_v a_o senseless_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n phi._n do_v not_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n theo._n you_o must_v prove_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v literal_a as_o well_o as_o the_o word_n to_o be_v he_o phi._n be_v not_o the_o letter_n plain_a this_o be_v my_o body_n theo._n the_o letter_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o it_o kill_v the_o carnal_a interpreter_n and_o have_v drive_v you_o while_o you_o will_v needs_o refuse_v the_o figurative_a and_o spiritual_a construction_n of_o christ_n word_n to_o these_o absurdity_n and_o enormity_n which_o have_v even_o overwhelm_v your_o church_n phi._n purpose_n can_v you_o wish_v for_o plain_a word_n than_o these_o this_o be_v my_o body_n theo._n i_o can_v wish_v that_o in_o expound_v these_o word_n you_o do_v rely_v rather_o on_o the_o catholic_a father_n than_o on_o your_o uncatholike_a fancy_n phi._n all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o voice_n toyne_z with_o we_o in_o this_o doctrine_n theoph._n you_o do_v but_o dream_v of_o a_o dry_a summer_n not_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n ever_o speak_v of_o your_o real_a presence_n or_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n on_o which_o you_o buyld_v the_o rest_n phi._n will_v you_o have_v a_o thousand_o place_n for_o that_o purpose_n or_o if_o variety_n of_o writer_n do_v rather_o content_v you_o will_v you_o have_v three_o or_o four_o hundred_o several_a father_n all_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a in_o diverse_a age_n and_o country_n that_o shall_v depose_v for_o our_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n theo._n i_o can_v enter_v a_o course_n to_o save_v you_o
by_o their_o own_o word_n to_o teach_v more_o than_o idle_a sign_n or_o only_a figure_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n because_o together_o with_o the_o name_n go_v the_o virtue_n and_o effect_n of_o christ_n flesh_n &_o blood_n unite_v in_o manner_n of_o a_o sacrament_n to_o the_o visible_a sign_n and_o this_o their_o assertion_n neither_o trouble_v our_o doctrine_n nor_o strengthen_v your_o error_n again_o these_o writer_n may_v very_o well_o say_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v no_o figure_n but_o trve_v itself_o come_v in_o that_o respect_n as_o figure_n be_v take_v for_o sampler_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v such_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n which_o do_v premonstrat_v the_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o flesh_n flesh_n &_o cease_v at_o his_o come_n and_o so_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v not_o figure_n of_o thing_n expect_v but_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n there_o sit_v in_o person_n &_o the_o next_o day_n to_o be_v nail_v to_o the_o cross_n thereby_o to_o fulfil_v &_o abolish_v all_o figure_n &_o our_o sacrament_n be_v now_o not_o sign_n of_o far_a promise_n but_o memorial_n of_o his_o mercy_n already_o perform_v do_v this_o say_v christ_n not_o in_o figure_n of_o a_o other_o truth_n to_o come_v but_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o which_o be_o come_v for_o memory_n you_o know_v stretch_v only_o to_o thing_n past_a and_o do_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o letter_n may_v be_v safe_o press_v and_o your_o carnal_a conveyance_n nothing_o relieve_v christ._n i_o find_v a_o three_o cause_n that_o may_v induce_v they_o to_o force_v the_o letter_n in_o this_o sort_n &_o yet_o no_o way_n confirm_v your_o gross_a supposal_n which_o be_v this_o when_o the_o greek_a church_n fall_v at_o variance_n for_o image_n they_o which_o hold_v that_o christ_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v figure_v after_o the_o likeness_n of_o our_o body_n amongst_o other_o reason_n allege_v this_o for_o one_o that_o the_o lord_n at_o his_o supper_n 6._o for_o a_o true_a and_o effectual_a image_n of_o his_o incarnation_n choose_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n not_o any_o way_n like_o the_o proportion_n of_o a_o man_n lest_o it_o shall_v occasion_v idolatry_n the_o defender_n of_o image_n who_o side_n damascene_fw-la take_v press_v with_o this_o objection_n dare_v not_o flee_v to_o your_o annihilation_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o divine_a honour_n which_o no_o doubt_n they_o will_v have_v do_v with_o great_a triumph_n have_v those_o two_o point_n of_o your_o doctrine_n be_v then_o count_v catholic_a but_o yield_v and_o by_o their_o silence_n confess_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v in_o the_o supper_n they_o and_o be_v not_o adore_v for_o so_o the_o contrary_a part_n oppose_v at_o length_n for_o very_o pure_a need_n come_v to_o this_o shift_n that_o the_o mystical_a bread_n be_v not_o ordain_v to_o resemble_v and_o figure_n christ_n humane_a nature_n nor_o so_o call_v by_o christ_n at_o his_o maundie_n who_o say_v not_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o my_o body_n nor_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o blood_n but_o my_o blood_n and_o when_o basil_n and_o eustathius_n be_v produce_v affirm_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v figure_n and_o resemblance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n the_o patroness_n of_o image_n reply_v that_o be_v speak_v always_o before_o never_o after_o consecration_n wherefore_o damascene_fw-la first_o begin_v this_o mynce_n and_o strain_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o build_v on_o they_o any_o real_a or_o corporal_a conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o favour_n of_o his_o artifical_a picture_n and_o image_n he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n abide_v that_o the_o mystery_n shall_v after_o consecration_n be_v call_v image_n and_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o next_o that_o trace_v this_o path_n after_o damascene_fw-la be_v epiphanius_n not_o that_o ancient_a and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o cyprus_n but_o a_o prattle_a deacon_n in_o the_o bastard_n council_n of_o nice_a who_o furious_a and_o fanatical_a answer_n to_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o make_v this_o objection_n declare_v more_o tongue_n than_o wit_n more_o face_n than_o learning_n 6._o christ_n do_v not_o say_v take_v you_o eat_v you_o the_o image_n of_o my_o body_n read_v while_o thou_o will_v say_v he_o thou_o shall_v never_o find_v that_o either_o the_o lord_n or_o his_o apostle_n or_o the_o father_n call_v that_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o priest_n offer_v a_o image_n thus_o do_v he_o braie_v forth_o crake_v defiance_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n without_o truth_n without_o shame_n for_o chrysostome_n say_v 83_o if_o jesus_n be_v not_o once_o dead_a who_o image_n and_o sign_n be_v this_o sacrifice_n this_o heb._n sacrifice_n be_v a_o image_n and_o sampler_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n and_o gelasius_n eutichen_n sure_o the_o image_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o mystery_n we_o must_v therefore_o so_o think_v of_o the_o lord_n christ_n himself_o as_o we_o profess_v and_o observe_v in_o his_o image_n and_o likewise_o theodoret._n ortho._n 2._o the_o mystical_a sign_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n by_o his_o priest_n whereof_o do_v thou_o call_v they_o sign_n eranist_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n ortho_n it_o be_v very_o well_o say_v confer_v then_o the_o image_n with_o the_o pattern_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o likeness_n dionysius_n call_v it_o both_o a_o 3._o image_n and_o a_o figurative_a sacrifice_n nazianzene_n excuse_v himself_o 3._o how_o shall_v i_o say_v he_o presume_v to_o offer_v unto_o god_n that_o external_a sacrifice_n the_o image_n of_o the_o great_a mystery_n clemens_n offer_v you_o in_o your_o church_n the_o image_n of_o the_o royal_a body_n of_o christ._n macarius_n 27._o in_o the_o church_n be_v offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n the_o image_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n the_o ãâã_d âaâhers_v keep_v the_o same_o word_n &_o the_o same_o sense_n ambrose_n 48._o in_o the_o law_n be_v a_o shadow_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v a_o image_n in_o heaven_n be_v the_o truth_n before_o be_v offer_v a_o lamb_n or_o a_o calf_n now_o christ_n be_v offer_v here_o in_o a_o image_n there_o in_o truth_n where_o he_o intreat_v his_o father_n as_o a_o advocate_n for_o us._n austen_n passion_n christ_n give_v a_o image_n of_o his_o burn_a offering_n to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n for_o a_o remembrance_n of_o his_o passion_n the_o rest_n say_v the_o like_a but_o what_o need_v we_o far_o refutation_n of_o so_o ridiculous_a and_o unshamefast_a a_o brag_n such_o cause_n such_o counsel_n such_o poppet_n such_o proctor_n the_o very_a child_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n know_v that_o the_o divine_a mystery_n by_o the_o general_a definition_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n and_o as_o augustine_n interprete_v the_o word_n slender_a sacramentum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la sacrum_fw-la signum_fw-la a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v a_o sacred_a sign_n so_o that_o unless_o they_o be_v sign_n they_o can_v possible_o be_v no_o sacrament_n &_o neither_o sacrament_n nor_o sign_n can_v they_o be_v without_o or_o before_o consecration_n which_o this_o stout_a champion_n have_v not_o yet_o learned_a &_o therefore_o his_o verdict_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n except_o his_o cunning_n be_v great_a may_v be_v well_o refuse_v as_o damasene_n and_o your_o prate_a epiphanius_n be_v more_o than_o 700._o year_n after_o christ_n so_o theophilact_v and_o euthymius_n be_v far_o young_a the_o first_o of_o they_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o bulgarian_n who_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o fare_v 868._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o second_o your_o own_o chronology_n place_v after_o gracian_a and_o lombard_n 1100._o year_n short_a of_o christ._n be_v then_o these_o late_a grecian_n whole_o with_o you_o what_o gain_v you_o by_o they_o if_o you_o will_v oppose_v they_o to_o tertullian_n origen_n cyprian_n austen_n gelasius_n thedorete_n &_o other_o of_o pure_a time_n and_o sound_a judgement_n you_o can_v win_v nothing_o by_o that_o bargain_n the_o choice_n be_v soon_o make_v which_o to_o take_v which_o to_o leave_v but_o in_o deed_n you_o do_v they_o wrong_v to_o return_v they_o for_o transsubstantiator_n they_o never_o know_v what_o it_o mean_v they_o say_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v not_o only_a figure_n but_o have_v the_o truth_n annex_v no_o figure_n of_o grace_n differ_v but_o seal_n of_o mercy_n perform_v in_o christ_n and_o enjoy_v of_o we_o no_o call_v figure_n or_o image_n of_o christ_n flesh_n after_o consecration_n but_o bear_v as_o well_o the_o name_n as_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o who_o
after_o the_o same_o sort_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n even_o so_o the_o sacrament_n of_o faith_n mean_v thereby_o baptism_n be_v say_v we_o he_o bury_v say_v paul_n with_o christ_n through_o baptism_n into_o his_o death_n hâ_n say_v not_o we_o signify_v that_o his_o burial_n but_o he_o say_v plain_o we_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n he_o will_v not_o call_v but_o by_o the_o ãâ¦ã_o thing_n itself_o upon_o this_o very_a ground_n be_v conclude_v 12._o as_o you_o hear_v ãâ¦ã_o lââd_v doubt_v not_o not_o to_o say_v this_o my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n what_o manuel_n then_o if_o the_o catholic_a father_n use_v often_o the_o name_n of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n where_o the_o material_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n must_v be_v understand_v since_o this_o be_v the_o certain_a rule_n of_o all_o sacrament_n and_o the_o common_a order_n of_o all_o ancient_a divine_v write_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n remain_v to_o call_v the_o gift_n propose_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o wilful_a contempt_n of_o which_o observation_n have_v miserable_o snare_v and_o hamper_v you_o and_o your_o fellow_n every_o where_o refer_v and_o force_v that_o to_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o by_o the_o learned_a and_o godly_a father_n be_v speak_v and_o mean_v of_o the_o visible_a sign_n call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n the_o second_o thing_n that_o you_o stick_v at_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n which_o we_o say_v remain_v and_o abide_v as_o well_o after_o consecration_n as_o before_o you_o will_v have_v it_o either_o vanish_v to_o nothing_o or_o else_o to_o be_v turn_v and_o convert_v into_o the_o very_a flesh_n of_o christ_n there_o present_a god_n &_o man_n under_o the_o whiteness_n roundness_n &_o such_o like_a show_n &_o appearance_n of_o bread_n substance_n leave_v only_o to_o content_v the_o sight_n and_o palate_n lest_o the_o raw_a flesh_n of_o christ_n shall_v displease_v your_o eye_n or_o offend_v your_o taste_n this_o be_v your_o doctrine_n and_o this_o we_o say_v be_v not_o catholic_a the_o church_n of_o christ_n never_o hold_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n perish_v or_o cease_v after_o consecration_n it_o be_v a_o late_a devise_n you_o can_v bring_v no_o father_n that_o be_v ancient_a for_o this_o assertion_n they_o never_o teach_v they_o never_o hear_v they_o never_o dream_v any_o such_o thing_n they_o teach_v that_o the_o mystical_a sign_n be_v creature_n well_o know_v not_o strange_a and_o miraculous_a accident_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o change_v but_o remain_v still_o after_o consecration_n and_o this_o they_o teach_v in_o as_o plain_a word_n as_o heart_n can_v imagine_v or_o tongue_n express_v let_v the_o reader_n be_v judge_v if_o i_o âaye_v not_o the_o truth_n gelasius_n a_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o his_o antiquity_n reverence_v of_o we_o for_o his_o place_n not_o to_o be_v refuse_v of_o you_o write_v thus_o against_o eutiche_n eutichen_n the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o receive_v of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o divine_a thing_n &_o by_o they_o be_v we_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n &_o yet_o for_o all_o that_o cease_v not_o the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n to_o be_v theodoret_n 2._o the_o mystical_a sign_n do_v not_o after_o sanctification_n depart_v from_o their_o own_o nature_n for_o they_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n &_o form_n ambrose_n 3._o thou_o come_v to_o the_o altar_n &_o âawest_v the_o sacrament_n thereon_o &_o wondere_a at_o the_o very_a creature_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o solemn_a &_o know_a creature_n ireneus_fw-la 32._o christ_n counsel_v or_o willing_a his_o disciple_n to_o offer_v to_o god_n the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o creature_n take_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v a_o creature_n &_o give_v thanks_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 34._o we_o must_v therefore_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v find_v thankful_a to_o god_n the_o creator_n offer_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o creature_n which_o be_v he_o and_o this_o oblation_n the_o church_n only_o make_v in_o purity_n to_o the_o creator_n offer_v to_o he_o of_o his_o own_o creature_n with_o thanks_n give_v origen_n the_o lord_n bread_n according_a to_o the_o material_a part_n thereof_o go_v into_o the_o belly_n matth._n and_o thence_o to_o the_o draught_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n that_o do_v profit_v the_o receiver_n but_o the_o word_n rehearse_v over_o it_o epiphanius_n anchoraâo_n that_o which_o our_o saviour_n our_o take_v in_o his_o hand_n and_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n we_o see_v to_o be_v neither_o proportional_a nor_o like_a to_o his_o image_n in_o flesh_n nor_o his_o invisible_a deity_n for_o this_o be_v of_o a_o round_a figure_n &_o have_v no_o power_n of_o sense_n but_o our_o lord_n we_o know_v to_o be_v whole_o sense_n whole_o sensitive_a cyprian_a domini_fw-la since_o the_o lord_n say_v do_v this_o in_o my_o remembrance_n this_o be_v my_o flesh_n &_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o often_o as_o with_o these_o word_n &_o this_o faith_n we_o do_v that_o he_o do_v this_o substantial_a bread_n &_o cup_n sanctify_v with_o a_o solemn_a blessing_n be_v profitable_a for_o the_o life_n &_o safeguard_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n be_v both_o a_o medicine_n to_o heal_v our_o infirmity_n &_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o cleanse_v our_o iniquity_n chrysostom_n after_o consecration_n monach._n it_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n &_o repute_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n notwithstanding_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n still_o remain_v austen_n infant_n these_o thing_n be_v therefore_o call_v sacrament_n because_o in_o they_o one_o thing_n be_v see_v &_o a_o other_o thing_n understand_v that_o which_o be_v see_v speciem_fw-la habet_fw-la corporalem_fw-la have_v a_o corporal_a shape_n or_o kind_a that_o which_o be_v understand_v have_v a_o spiritual_a fruit_n 5._o this_o be_v of_o all_o other_o a_o miserable_a servitude_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o mistake_v the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n themselves_o &_o not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n above_o the_o corporal_a creature_n to_o behold_v the_o light_n that_o be_v eternal_a the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 6._o christ_n command_v the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n choose_v for_o his_o image_n to_o be_v set_v on_o his_o table_n lest_o if_o it_o resemble_v the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n idolatry_n may_v be_v commit_v bertram_z sanguine_a the_o sign_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o same_o after_o consecration_n which_o they_o be_v before_o can_v you_o look_v for_o plain_a or_o direct_a witness_n do_v they_o not_o all_o join_v together_o in_o one_o profession_n and_o succession_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o consecration_n be_v know_v corporal_a and_o senseless_a creature_n abide_v in_o their_o proper_a and_o former_a yea_o their_o whole_a nature_n and_o substance_n remain_v be_v not_o these_o word_n significant_a and_o pregnant_a direct_o confute_v your_o real_a enclose_v and_o corporal_a eaâing_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o show_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n the_o three_o thing_n that_o i_o say_v be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v their_o power_n and_o operation_n for_o since_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v not_o change_v the_o sign_n can_v not_o just_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o except_o ââe_z virtue_n power_n and_o âffect_v of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v adjoin_v to_o they_o and_o unite_v with_o they_o after_o a_o secret_a and_o unspeakable_a manner_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o whosoever_o du_o receive_v the_o sign_n be_v undoubted_o partaker_n of_o the_o grace_n offer_v unto_o all_o but_o enjoy_v only_o by_o those_o that_o with_o faith_n and_o repentance_n cleanse_v the_o inward_a man_n from_o that_o corruption_n of_o flesh_n &_o spirit_n which_o christ_n abhor_v cyprian_n of_o sacrament_n in_o general_n write_v thus_o chrismââ_n to_o the_o element_n once_o sanctify_v not_o now_o their_o own_o nature_n give_v effect_n but_o the_o divine_a virtue_n work_v in_o they_o more_o mighty_o the_o truth_n be_v present_a with_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o spirit_n with_o the_o sacrament_n so_o that_o the_o worthiness_n of_o the_o grace_n appear_v by_o the_o very_a efficiency_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o special_a thus_o he_o say_v b_o there_o be_v give_v the_o food_n of_o immortality_n differ_v from_o common_a meat_n corporalis_fw-la substantiae_fw-la etmens_n speciem_fw-la retain_v the_o kind_n or_o truth_n
the_o lord_n table_n heresy_n we_o look_v not_o on_o that_o which_o be_v break_v in_o piece_n which_o be_v press_v with_o tooth_n which_o feed_v the_o body_n but_o only_o that_o which_o be_v take_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n do_v the_o meat_n which_o the_o faithful_a receive_v in_o the_o church_n as_o touch_v that_o which_o be_v corporal_o take_v that_o which_o be_v chammed_a with_o tooth_n that_o which_o be_v swallow_v with_o jaw_n that_o which_o be_v close_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o belly_n put_v we_o in_o assurance_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o way_n no_o question_n it_o feed_v our_o flesh_n which_o shall_v die_v neither_o yield_v we_o any_o kind_n of_o incorruption_n for_o this_o which_o the_o body_n receive_v be_v corruptible_a that_o which_o faith_n behold_v feed_v the_o soul_n and_o perform_v we_o everlasting_a life_n if_o these_o father_n be_v not_o able_a to_o remove_v you_o from_o the_o corporal_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o tooth_n &_o jaw_n hear_v in_o how_o plain_a term_n your_o own_o law_n do_v check_v this_o grossness_n of_o you_o ibidem_fw-la the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o incorporate_v with_o we_o descend_v not_o into_o the_o stomach_n pass_v not_o into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n for_o it_o be_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n not_o of_o the_o body_n and_o where_o pope_n nicholas_n drive_v berengarius_fw-la in_o his_o recantation_n to_o say_v that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o chammed_a between_o the_o tooth_n of_o the_o faithful_a your_o gloze_v can_v forebear_v no_o long_o but_o cry_v out_o ibidem_fw-la nisi_fw-la sanè_fw-la intelligas_fw-la except_o thou_o take_v good_a heed_n to_o these_o word_n thou_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o great_a heresy_n than_o ever_o berengarius_fw-la hold_v then_o blame_v not_o we_o philander_n for_o say_v this_o your_o assertion_n be_v not_o catholic_a the_o provost_n mareschall_n of_o your_o own_o side_n not_o long_o since_o say_v it_o be_v heretical_a phi._n have_v you_o do_v theo._n i_o have_v if_o you_o listen_v to_o begin_v phi._n what_o a_o stir_n be_v here_o to_o bring_v beggar_n to_o the_o stock_n &_o all_o not_o worth_a a_o straw_n theo._n in_o deed_n friar_n be_v the_o near_a kinsman_n that_o beggar_n have_v they_o both_o live_v by_o shift_v &_o gain_v by_o dissemble_v save_o that_o friar_n be_v always_o within_o door_n when_o beggar_n be_v without_o but_o what_o be_v it_o that_o do_v so_o much_o offend_v you_o in_o my_o speech_n philan._n you_o run_v along_o with_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o if_o all_o be_v you_o theophil_n i_o show_v you_o a_o truth_n confirm_v by_o the_o scripture_n avouch_v by_o the_o father_n and_o confess_v by_o your_o own_o fellow_n if_o that_o displease_v you_o your_o mouth_n be_v out_o of_o taste_n philand_n have_v you_o the_o truth_n so_o have_v the_o devil_n for_o you_o be_v his_o member_n in_o that_o you_o be_v heretic_n theo._n this_o be_v but_o a_o jade_n trick_n when_o you_o feel_v the_o spur_n to_o fling_v out_o behind_o the_o more_o you_o reason_n the_o more_o you_o find_v that_o you_o have_v run_v the_o race_n of_o your_o own_o devise_n without_o the_o father_n and_o now_o you_o can_v not_o resist_v you_o fall_v to_o revile_v and_o curse_a speak_v phi._n we_o can_v with_o one_o lift_v lay_v all_o your_o authority_n in_o the_o miâe_n good_a theoph._n your_o can_v be_v great_a but_o your_o liquor_n small_a i_o dare_v promise_n for_o you_o that_o you_o will_v struggle_v what_o you_o can_v to_o be_v rid_v of_o the_o burden_n phi._n with_o three_o bare_a word_n i_o will_v answer_v your_o three_o part_n and_o all_o your_o proof_n theo._n they_o may_v be_v so_o bare_a they_o will_v do_v you_o no_o good_a but_o at_o adventure_n what_o be_v they_o phi._n that_o the_o sign_n after_o consecration_n carry_v the_o name_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v very_o true_a but_o it_o answer_v not_o the_o place_n which_o i_o do_v object_n and_o as_o for_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v which_o sâme_v father_n seem_v to_o affirm_v we_o say_v substance_n be_v there_o takân_v not_o for_o the_o very_a substance_n itself_o which_o be_v real_o change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o some_o other_o thing_n theo._n what_o other_o thing_n phi._n not_o for_o that_o which_o you_o mean_v theo._n let_v my_o meaning_n alone_o and_o speak_v you_o to_o their_o assertion_n that_o say_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n in_o their_o former_a and_o proper_a nature_n and_o substance_n accident_n phi._n substance_n be_v there_o take_v for_o nature_n theo._n nature_n be_v so_o general_a that_o it_o comprise_v both_o the_o substance_n &_o accident_n of_o every_o thing_n if_o then_o the_o sign_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a nature_n they_o must_v retain_v both_o their_o former_a substance_n and_o their_o former_a accident_n phi._n their_o substance_n they_o do_v not_o their_o quality_n they_o do_v as_o sight_n taste_n bigness_n and_o such_o like_a property_n theo._n but_o the_o place_n which_o i_o cite_v affirm_v they_o retain_v both_o and_o namely_o their_o proper_a and_o former_a substance_n phi._n that_o be_v their_o former_a quality_n theo._n do_v substance_n signify_v quality_n phi._n in_o these_o place_n cheese_n it_o do_v theo._n why_o more_o in_o these_o than_o in_o other_o substance_n in_o all_o learning_n be_v divide_v against_o accident_n how_o then_o come_v substance_n by_o your_o learning_n to_o be_v take_v for_o accident_n phi._n it_o be_v so_o for_o otherwise_o those_o say_n be_v all_o one_o with_o heresy_n if_o substance_n shall_v be_v take_v in_o his_o proper_a signification_n theo._n yea_o marry_o now_o you_o come_v to_o your_o right_a colour_n if_o the_o father_n word_n shall_v not_o be_v violent_o wrest_v from_o their_o perpetual_a &_o natural_a signification_n you_o can_v possible_o avoid_v but_o they_o teach_v âhat_n doctrine_n for_o catholic_a which_o you_o now_o reject_v for_o heresy_n phi._n say_v they_o never_o teach_v it_o the._n themselves_o be_v dead_a and_o do_v not_o speak_v their_o word_n in_o which_o they_o speak_v while_o they_o live_v make_v as_o direct_o for_o we_o as_o we_o can_v speak_v any_o unless_o you_o turn_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o say_v the_o upside_o down_o and_o take_v figure_n for_o truth_n substance_n for_o accident_n creature_n for_o show_n tooth_n for_o faith_n &_o heaven_n for_o earth_n which_o privilege_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n and_o father_n clean_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n if_o you_o can_v procure_v or_o justify_v i_o will_v be_v your_o surety_n all_o the_o protestant_n in_o christendom_n shall_v never_o touch_v the_o least_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n in_o all_o the_o folly_n which_o you_o defend_v phi._n we_o do_v not_o force_v they_o against_o their_o meaning_n then_o show_v your_o exposition_n to_o be_v true_a by_o other_o point_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o part_n of_o their_o writing_n which_o must_v infallible_o force_v you_o to_o that_o construction_n phi._n so_o we_o do_v theo._n with_o place_n as_o shameful_o abuse_v as_o these_o phi._n no_o by_o innumerable_a and_o inevitable_a authority_n theo._n bring_v but_o one_o father_n that_o shall_v say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v cease_v or_o abolish_v by_o consecration_n and_o you_o shall_v have_v free_a leave_n to_o do_v what_o you_o will_v with_o all_o the_o rest_n phi._n we_o can_v bring_v infinite_a theo._n you_o may_v the_o soon_o choose_v out_o one_o philan._n you_o will_v put_v we_o to_o bring_v other_o proof_n before_o you_o have_v answer_v those_o that_o be_v already_o produce_v i_o bring_v you_o sir_n father_n affirm_v the_o flâshe_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v with_o our_o mouth_n you_o will_v leap_v to_o new_a matter_n and_o shake_v they_o off_o at_o your_o finger_n end_n but_o i_o will_v none_o of_o that_o first_o make_v even_o with_o the_o old_a score_n before_o you_o enter_v on_o a_o new_a reckon_n theophi_fw-la you_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o digression_n and_o not_o i._n you_o reply_v to_o my_o proof_n and_o pursue_v not_o your_o own_o and_o yet_o you_o need_v not_o say_v your_o place_n be_v unanswered_a yourself_o have_v confess_v the_o weakness_n of_o your_o own_o authority_n &_o yield_v they_o as_o unsufficient_a to_o bear_v the_o weight_n of_o your_o conclusion_n what_o other_o answer_n will_v you_o have_v tooth_n phi._n have_v i_o dissable_v i_o own_o proof_n theo._n your_o own_o conclusion_n you_o have_v phi._n will_v you_o make_v i_o so_o mad_a theo._n i_o think_v you_o be_v more_o sober_a then_o than_o now_o for_o than_o you_o agrised_z a_o truth_n and_o now_o you_o resist_v it_o again_o phi._n what_o do_v i_o agnise_v do_v you_o think_v i_o be_v a_o sleep_n that_o i_o
pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o leo_n and_o if_o you_o do_v but_o understand_v the_o right_a course_n of_o his_o reason_n you_o will_v suppress_v both_o his_o voice_n and_o your_o vaunt_n for_o very_a shame_n phi._n he_o that_o will_v trust_v your_o say_n shall_v have_v many_o false_a fire_n when_o he_o shall_v not_o theo._n and_o he_o that_o will_v credit_v your_o do_n shall_v feel_v many_o quick_a flame_n when_o he_o will_v not_o phi._n you_o be_v better_o at_o quip_v than_o at_o answer_v theo._n you_o be_v loath_a we_o shall_v encroach_v on_o your_o common_a but_o return_v to_o leo._n can_v you_o tell_v against_o who_o he_o write_v phi._n against_o such_o as_o you_o be_v that_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n be_v they_o man_n without_o name_n or_o name_n without_o man_n phi._n mock_v not_o they_o be_v do_v your_o ancestor_n theo._n they_o say_v it_o be_v a_o wise_a child_n that_o know_v his_o own_o father_n do_v you_o but_o in_o sadness_n who_o do_v leo_n traduce_v in_o that_o sermon_n phil._n marry_o eutiche_n and_o such_o like_a heretic_n theoph._n you_o say_v well_o for_o leo_n name_v he_o but_o a_o little_a before_o in_o that_o sermon_n and_o against_o his_o opinion_n he_o reason_v philand_n i_o be_o content_a with_o that_o theoph._n what_o be_v his_o error_n phi._n he_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n who_o tell_v you_o so_o phi._n i_o gather_v it_o by_o those_o that_o refute_v he_o theo._n by_o they_o you_o shall_v learn_v his_o error_n but_o this_o it_o be_v not_o philan._n what_o be_v it_o say_v you_o theo._n eutiche_n affirm_v that_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o substance_n be_v not_o only_o glorify_v by_o his_o ascension_n but_o consume_v and_o turn_v into_o the_o nature_n &_o immensity_n of_o his_o godhead_n against_o he_o write_v theodorete_a gelasius_n and_o other_o and_o one_o of_o the_o chief_a argument_n which_o they_o bring_v against_o he_o be_v that_o which_o leo_n here_o touch_v in_o a_o word_n or_o two_o phi._n that_o argument_n clean_o confound_v your_o sacramentarie_a sect._n theo._n you_o or_o we_o it_o must_v needs_o confound_v eutich_n for_o this_o it_o be_v as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n be_v change_v and_o alter_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o be_v the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n convert_v into_o his_o divine_a after_o his_o resurrection_n &_o ascension_n but_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v neither_o in_o substance_n nor_o form_n nor_o figure_n nor_o natural_a propriety_n but_o only_o in_o grace_n and_o work_n ergo_fw-la christ_n humane_a nature_n be_v not_o change_v into_o his_o divine_a either_o in_o substance_n circumscription_n or_o form_n but_o only_o endue_v with_o glory_n and_o immortality_n phi._n this_o be_v no_o catholic_a reason_n but_o savore_v altogether_o of_o your_o heretical_a poison_n theo._n they_o which_o first_o frame_v and_o urge_v this_o reason_n against_o eutiche_n in_o your_o opinion_n be_v they_o heretic_n phi._n no_o father_n ever_o use_v it_o theo._n if_o they_o do_v must_v not_o they_o be_v doub_v for_o heretic_n as_o the_o first_o proposer_n of_o that_o reason_n or_o at_o least_o you_o for_o affirm_v now_o the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o you_o reject_v both_o their_o assumption_n &_o conclusion_n against_o eutiche_n as_o stark_o false_a and_o who_o ancetour_n then_o be_v eutiche_n but_o you_o phi._n they_o do_v not_o use_v it_o as_o you_o report_v it_o theo._n look_v you_o offspring_n of_o eutiche_n whether_o gelasius_n theodoret_n and_o augustine_n do_v not_o urge_v it_o in_o those_o very_a point_n and_o word_n which_o i_o repeat_v thus_o gelasius_n frame_v his_o reason_n against_o eutiche_n a_o image_n or_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o mystery_n it_o be_v therefore_o apparent_a and_o evident_a enough_o that_o we_o must_v hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o christ_n the_o lord_n which_o we_o profess_v celebrate_v and_o receive_v in_o his_o image_n that_o as_o those_o sign_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pass_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n and_o yet_o remain_v in_o the_o propriety_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n even_o so_o that_o very_o principal_a mystery_n itself_o who_o force_n &_o truth_n that_o image_n assure_o represent_v do_v demonstrate_v one_o whole_a and_o true_a christ_n 2._o to_o continue_v the_o two_o nature_n of_o which_o he_o consist_v proper_o remain_v and_o lest_o you_o shall_v not_o understand_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o this_o the_o sign_n still_o abide_v in_o the_o propriety_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n he_o expound_v himself_o a_o say_v non_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o or_o perish_v not_o when_o theodoret_n have_v make_v a_o entrance_n to_o the_o very_a same_o reason_n by_o lay_v this_o foundation_n oportet_fw-la archetypum_fw-la imaginis_fw-la esse_fw-la exemplar_n the_o original_a must_v be_v answerable_a to_o the_o image_n the_o heretic_n catch_v the_o word_n out_o of_o his_o mouth_n and_o say_v it_o happen_v in_o good_a time_n that_o you_o do_v mention_v the_o divine_a mystery_n for_o even_o thereby_o will_v i_o prove_v the_o lord_n body_n to_o be_v change_v into_o a_o other_o nature_n as_o then_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v other_o thing_n before_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o priest_n but_o after_o they_o be_v change_v and_o become_v other_o than_o that_o they_o be_v so_o the_o lord_n body_n after_o his_o assumption_n be_v change_v into_o his_o divine_a substance_n change_v the_o mayor_n be_v good_a &_o such_o as_o gelasius_n and_o theodoret_n do_v both_o avouch_v that_o as_o the_o sign_n be_v change_v after_o consecration_n so_o be_v christ_n humanity_n after_o his_o assumption_n if_o your_o opinion_n have_v then_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v by_o consecration_n the_o conclusion_n have_v be_v infallible_a for_o eutiches_n error_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n humanity_n have_v be_v change_v by_o his_o ascension_n into_o his_o divinity_n and_o not_o only_o both_o these_o father_n have_v have_v their_o mouth_n stop_v but_o eutiches_n error_n have_v be_v inâolâble_a as_o be_v ground_v on_o a_o mayor_n that_o be_v a_o confess_v and_o famous_a truth_n and_o on_o a_o minor_a that_o be_v as_o you_o think_v the_o undoubted_a say_v of_o the_o church_n mary_n the_o minor_a in_o deed_n be_v apparent_o false_a though_o you_o now_o defend_v it_o for_o catholic_a doctrine_n and_o with_o the_o plain_a denial_n of_o that_o as_o a_o manifest_a untruth_n theodoret_n infer_v the_o contrary_n eutâches_n that_o because_o neither_o the_o substance_n nor_o natural_a propriety_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v change_v by_o consecration_n as_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o believe_v and_o confess_v therefore_o neither_o the_o substance_n nor_o shape_n nor_o circumscription_n of_o chrisâes_n humane_a nature_n be_v change_v by_o his_o ascension_n but_o his_o body_n remain_v in_o the_o âame_n substance_n quantity_n and_o form_n that_o he_o rise_v from_o death_n and_o ascend_v up_o withal_o and_o with_o the_o very_a same_o form_n and_o substance_n of_o flesh_n shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n these_o be_v his_o word_n themselves_o thou_o be_v catch_v say_v theodoret_n to_o the_o heretic_n with_o the_o same_o net_n that_o thou_o lay_v for_o other_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o sanctification_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o their_o own_o nature_n for_o they_o remanie_fw-fr in_o their_o former_a substance_n and_o figure_n and_o form_n etc._n etc._n confer_v then_o the_o image_n with_o the_o original_n and_o thou_o shall_v see_v the_o likeness_n between_o they_o for_o the_o figure_n must_v be_v like_a to_o the_o truth_n that_o body_n therefore_o of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n have_v his_o former_a shape_n and_o figure_n &_o circumscription_n &_o to_o speak_v all_o at_o once_o his_o former_a substance_n lay_v all_o your_o head_n together_o aâd_o grant_v the_o mayor_n which_o the_o whole_a church_n hold_v avoid_v the_o conclusion_n of_o eutiche_n without_o the_o deny_v the_o minor_a as_o theodoret_n do_v which_o yet_o be_v your_o faith_n and_o belief_n at_o this_o day_n and_o we_o will_v grant_v you_o to_o be_v catholic_n and_o ourselves_o heretic_n if_o you_o can_v see_v how_o far_o you_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o that_o in_o no_o less_o point_n than_o the_o great_a and_o chieâesâ_n sacrament_n on_o which_o you_o have_v wicked_o found_v your_o adoration_n oblation_n half_a communion_n private_a mass_n and_o barbarous_a prayer_n without_o
you_o suffer_v the_o father_n himself_o to_o tell_v out_o his_o own_o tale_n place_n and_o be_v content_a to_o hear_v as_o well_o the_o end_n as_o the_o enter_v of_o it_o he_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v change_v in_o nature_n into_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o almighty_a power_n of_o the_o word_n express_v in_o what_o into_o what_o and_o by_o what_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v more_o part_n you_o can_v make_v phi._n we_o need_v not_o theo._n and_o yet_o all_o these_o notwithstanding_o he_o mean_v no_o material_a nor_o corporal_a change_n of_o the_o bread_n or_o wine_n but_o that_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v two_o distinct_a &_o perfect_a substance_n unite_v and_o join_v the_o one_o his_o manhood_n that_o be_v see_v the_o other_o his_o godhead_n that_o be_v hide_v even_o so_o to_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n persist_v in_o his_o former_a substance_n do_v the_o divine_a essence_n infunde_v itself_o after_o a_o secret_a and_o unsearchable_a manner_n domini_fw-la prove_v the_o presence_n of_o a_o heavenly_a virtue_n to_o be_v there_o by_o the_o invisible_a efficience_n philand_n if_o you_o will_v have_v the_o bread_n keep_v his_o proper_a and_o perfect_a both_o nature_n and_o substance_n what_o change_n be_v there_o make_v in_o the_o bread_n theoph._n this_o change_n be_v not_o the_o cast_v away_o of_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n either_o nature_n or_o substance_n but_o the_o cast_n unto_o it_o of_o a_o heavenly_a and_o invisible_a grace_n and_o so_o theoâorete_a express_v the_o mutation_n that_o be_v in_o this_o sacrament_n 1._o non_fw-la naturam_fw-la ipsam_fw-la transmutans_fw-la sed_fw-la naturae_fw-la adiiciens_fw-la gratiam_fw-la not_o change_v or_o cast_v away_o nature_n itself_o but_o add_v grace_n unto_o nature_n and_o that_o be_v s._n ambrose_n his_o meaning_n when_o he_o say_v 4._o sunt_fw-la quae_fw-la erant_fw-la &_o in_o aliud_fw-la commutantur_fw-la the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o they_o be_v ambrose_n both_o in_o nature_n and_o substance_n and_o be_v change_v into_o a_o other_o thing_n philand_n how_o can_v this_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v change_v and_o yet_o continue_v the_o same_o but_o as_o we_o expound_v it_o that_o in_o substance_n they_o be_v change_v and_o yet_o in_o show_n continue_v as_o they_o be_v before_o theoph._n this_o be_v your_o fancy_n we_o know_v but_o the_o learned_a father_n by_o their_o change_n mean_v no_o such_o thing_n they_o teach_v not_o any_o detraction_n or_o diminution_n of_o that_o which_o be_v but_o a_o adjection_n and_o apposition_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o and_o therefore_o they_o witness_v both_o as_o well_o the_o permanence_n of_o the_o element_n in_o their_o former_a nature_n as_o their_o change_n into_o a_o other_o chrysostome_n say_v as_o you_o hear_v before_o caesârium_fw-la the_o bread_n sanctify_v be_v count_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n etsi_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_fw-la in_o ipso_fw-la permansit_fw-la though_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n remain_v there_o still_o and_o theodoret_n 2._o neque_fw-la enim_fw-la signa_fw-la illa_fw-la mystica_fw-la post_fw-la sanctificationem_fw-la recedunt_fw-la à _fw-la sva_fw-la natura_fw-la those_o mystical_a sign_n do_v not_o by_o consecration_n depart_v from_o their_o nature_n and_o gelasius_n est_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n do_v not_o cease_v or_o perish_v and_o to_o this_o very_a sacrament_n s._n austen_n appli_v this_o rule_n omnis_fw-la res_fw-la naturam_fw-la &_o veritatem_fw-la illarum_fw-la rerum_fw-la in_o se_fw-la continet_fw-la ex_fw-la quibus_fw-la conficitur_fw-la every_o thing_n contain_v or_o keep_v the_o nature_n &_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o consist_v phi._n you_o refuââ_n cyprian_a you_o do_v not_o expound_v he_o he_o say_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o bread_n it_o be_v change_v you_o prove_v it_o remain_v be_v not_o these_o contrary_n theo._n bâ_n your_o exposition_n they_o be_v by_o we_o they_o be_v not_o for_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n we_o say_v remain_v and_o be_v in_o nothing_o diminish_v but_o increase_v with_o a_o heavenly_a virtue_n that_o be_v add_v to_o it_o and_o this_o though_o it_o be_v a_o change_n to_o that_o which_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o be_v it_o no_o change_n from_o that_o which_o it_o be_v philand_n that_o be_v proper_o change_v which_o be_v alter_v from_o that_o it_o be_v theo._n and_o that_o be_v as_o proper_o say_v to_o be_v change_v which_o be_v increase_v with_o that_o it_o be_v not_o though_o it_o be_v not_o alter_v in_o substance_n from_o that_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v often_o change_v but_o never_o in_o substance_n the_o body_n from_o the_o cradle_n to_o the_o grave_n have_v many_o increase_v and_o change_n but_o in_o substance_n persi_v the_o same_o that_o it_o be_v before_o it_o come_v into_o the_o world_n every_o thing_n that_o grow_v keep_v that_o it_o have_v &_o atchive_v that_o it_o have_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v that_o a_o change_n but_o what_o need_v we_o other_o example_n since_o the_o father_n themselves_o do_v both_o by_o their_o word_n &_o similitude_n show_v what_o change_v they_o mean_v a_o child_n be_v bread_n change_v by_o baptism_n not_o in_o lose_v or_o alter_v the_o substance_n of_o body_n or_o soul_n which_o he_o have_v but_o in_o attain_v the_o grace_n &_o blessing_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v not_o the_o lord_n himself_o be_v bread_n change_v in_o person_n by_o his_o ascension_n not_o that_o the_o truth_n shape_n or_o circumscription_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v abolish_v but_o endue_v with_o immortal_a glory_n so_o shall_v he_o bread_n alter_v our_o vile_a body_n not_o by_o spoil_v they_o of_o their_o substance_n but_o by_o impart_v to_o they_o of_o his_o brightness_n and_o as_o s._n paul_n write_v 15._o we_o shall_v not_o all_o sleep_n but_o we_o shall_v be_v change_v phi._n s._n paul_n word_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n they_o be_v somewhat_o to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n which_o i_o propose_v and_o yet_o ireneus_fw-la do_v not_o stick_v to_o resemble_v the_o change_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o very_a hope_n and_o assurance_n which_o our_o body_n now_o have_v of_o that_o glory_n before_o they_o be_v change_v or_o have_v cast_v off_o their_o mortal_a and_o earthly_a corruption_n as_o say_v he_o 34._o the_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n receive_v the_o invocation_n of_o god_n be_v now_o no_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n a_o earthly_a &_o a_o heavenly_a so_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v now_o not_o corruptible_a that_o be_v not_o whole_o destinate_a to_o corruption_n as_o have_v hope_n of_o resurrection_n phi._n but_o s._n ambrose_n repeat_v 9_o example_n of_o corporal_a and_o substantial_a change_n when_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o blessing_n in_o this_o sacrament_n overbear_v nature_n theo._n s._n ambrose_n do_v not_o say_v sacrament_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o meaning_n to_o show_v that_o prayer_n and_o benediction_n work_v where_o nature_n can_v yea_o many_o time_n alter_v nature_n he_o bring_v seven_o example_n whereof_o five_o be_v no_o substantial_a change_n &_o in_o the_o end_n conclude_v that_o if_o the_o prayer_n &_o speech_n of_o man_n can_v turn_v &_o alter_v thing_n above_o &_o against_o nature_n much_o more_o can_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o element_n shall_v be_v that_o they_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v change_v into_o that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o which_o by_o nature_n they_o be_v not_o phi._n he_o have_v no_o such_o word_n in_o that_o chapter_n theo._n his_o conclusion_n there_o be_v this_o sermo_n ergo_fw-la christi_fw-la qui_fw-la potuit_fw-la ex_fw-la nihilo_fw-la facere_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_fw-la id_fw-la mutare_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la 9_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n who_o can_v of_o nothing_o make_v that_o which_o be_v not_o can_v he_o not_o change_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v into_o that_o which_o before_o they_o be_v not_o and_o in_o the_o next_o book_n entitle_v de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la assume_v the_o same_o matter_n and_o produce_v almost_o all_o the_o same_o example_n and_o argument_n he_o resolve_v in_o these_o word_n 4._o si_fw-la ergo_fw-la tanta_fw-la vis_fw-la est_fw-la in_o sermone_fw-la domini_fw-la jesu_fw-la ut_fw-la inciperent_fw-la esse_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la erant_fw-la quanto_fw-la magis_fw-la operatorius_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la sint_fw-la quae_fw-la erant_fw-la &_o in_o aliud_fw-la commutentur_fw-la if_o there_o be_v such_o force_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesu_n that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o at_o his_o word_n begin_v to_o be_v how_o much_o
more_o can_v it_o work_v this_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v change_v into_o a_o other_o thing_n 4._o and_o to_o show_v we_o a_o example_n how_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v that_o it_o be_v &_o yet_o be_v change_v he_o forthwith_o add_v tu_fw-la ipse_fw-la eras_fw-la sed_fw-la eraâ_n vetus_fw-la creatura_fw-la posteae_fw-la quam_fw-la consecratuâ_n es_fw-la nova_fw-la creatura_fw-la esse_fw-la caepisti_fw-la vis_fw-fr scire_fw-la quam_fw-la novae_fw-la creatura_fw-la omnis_fw-la inquit_fw-la in_fw-la christo_fw-la novae_fw-la creatura_fw-la accipâ_n ergo_fw-la quemadinodun_fw-la sermo_fw-la christi_fw-la creaturam_fw-la omnem_fw-la mutare_fw-la consueverit_fw-la &_o mutat_fw-la quando_fw-la vult_fw-la instituta_fw-la naturae_fw-la before_o thou_o thyself_o waste_v but_o thou_o be_v a_o old_a creature_n after_o when_o thou_o be_v baptize_v thou_o beganne_v to_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n will_v thou_o know_v how_o true_a it_o be_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n every_o one_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v in_o christ_n a_o new_a creature_n learn_v then_o how_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v accustom_v to_o change_v every_o creature_n and_o when_o he_o will_v he_o alter_v the_o course_n of_o natureâ_n â_z keep_v the_o same_o similitude_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o explication_n of_o himself_o that_o the_o rest_n do_v &_o thereby_o declare_v he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o that_o the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v be_v change_v for_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v suffer_v no_o material_a substantial_a nor_o corporal_a change_n though_o he_o be_v bear_v a_o fresh_a and_o put_v on_o christ_n and_o even_o so_o the_o sacred_a element_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n without_o abolish_n their_o former_a nature_n or_o substance_n phi._n if_o these_o place_n of_o s._n cyprian_a and_o s._n ambrose_n conclude_v not_o for_o we_o certain_o they_o conclude_v nothing_o against_o we_o and_o therefore_o you_o can_v refel_v our_o assertion_n by_o they_o theo._n i_o do_v not_o i_o show_v the_o place_n which_o you_o take_v most_o hold_v of_o have_v no_o such_o sequel_n as_o you_o surmise_n &_o so_o your_o transubstantiation_n be_v your_o late_a and_o private_a imagination_n without_o all_o antiquite_v phi._n call_v you_o that_o late_a or_o private_a which_o have_v be_v the_o general_a and_o constant_a confession_n of_o all_o christendom_n for_o these_o crake_v fifteen_o hundred_o year_n theo._n it_o do_v you_o good_a to_o crake_v though_o there_o be_v neither_o truth_n nor_o sense_n in_o that_o you_o say_v have_v all_o christendom_n for_o these_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n confess_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n at_o the_o lord_n table_n to_o be_v change_v into_o the_o real_a &_o natural_a body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n phi._n it_o have_v theo._n how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o phi._n you_o may_v find_v it_o in_o their_o writing_n theo._n how_o chance_v than_o you_o can_v not_o show_v one_o that_o for_o 800_o year_n make_v that_o confession_n phi._n we_o can_v theo._n you_o do_v not_o as_o yet_o phi._n yea_o we_o answer_n have_v do_v it_o s._n augustine_n tell_v you_o plain_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v not_o remain_v but_o only_o the_o quality_n and_o venerable_a bede_n say_v there_o be_v the_o show_n but_o not_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o these_o direct_a and_o fair_a proof_n theo._n fair_o forge_v they_o be_v but_o otherwise_o the_o writer_n themselves_o be_v never_o of_o that_o opinion_n phi._n i_o have_v prove_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o s._n cyril_n that_o it_o be_v no_o bread_n theo._n no_o bare_a nor_o common_a bread_n as_o our_o sense_n do_v judge_v but_o yet_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n still_o remain_v though_o endue_v with_o a_o more_o divine_a and_o mighty_a grace_n phi._n the_o bread_n be_v change_v as_o s._n cyprian_a and_o s._n ambrose_n teach_v theo._n not_o by_o lose_v that_o it_o have_v but_o by_o annex_v that_o it_o have_v not_o phi._n it_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ._n theo._n but_o by_o no_o materal_a nor_o corporal_a change_n of_o the_o former_a substance_n phi._n this_o be_v your_o delude_n of_o father_n the._n that_o be_v your_o abuse_n of_o they_o phi._n you_o recall_v their_o word_n to_o your_o like_n theo._n and_o you_o enforce_v they_o against_o their_o meaning_n phi._n who_o shall_v judge_v of_o that_o theo._n not_o you_o phi._n nor_o you_o theo._n let_v their_o own_o mouth_n be_v trust_v phi._n i_o be_o well_o content_v theo._n then_o be_v you_o condemn_v for_o where_o their_o word_n bear_v our_o exposition_n as_o well_o as_o you_o word_n you_o urge_v a_o corporal_a and_o substantial_a change_n on_o their_o speech_n in_o every_o place_n which_o they_o in_o plain_a word_n protest_v to_o be_v no_o part_n of_o their_o faith_n phi._n where_o find_v you_o that_o protestation_n theo._n be_v your_o memory_n so_o short_a that_o i_o must_v now_o make_v a_o new_a repetition_n phi._n you_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v the._n and_o that_o which_o i_o profess_v i_o perform_v you_o may_v turn_v back_o &_o view_v the_o word_n 756._o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o sign_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n as_o touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n they_o be_v the_o same_o after_o consecration_n that_o they_o be_v before_o and_o that_o be_v cyprian_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v domini_fw-la corporalis_fw-la substantiae_fw-la retinens_fw-la speciem_fw-la retain_v their_o kind_n of_o corporal_a substance_n as_o also_o this_o substantial_a bread_n this_o be_v warrant_v sufficient_a in_o any_o christian_a man_n judgement_n for_o we_o so_o to_o interpret_v the_o father_n word_n as_o we_o do_v not_o abolish_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n which_o they_o confess_v remain_v phi._n have_v that_o be_v their_o doctrine_n will_v their_o after-commer_n think_v you_o year_n have_v so_o soon_o swerve_v from_o their_o faith_n theo._n they_o do_v not_o that_o very_a confession_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v after_o consecration_n dure_v almost_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o most_o part_n of_o the_o west_n church_n and_o namely_o in_o this_o realm_n omit_v bertram_n that_o live_v 830._o after_o christ_n who_o book_n be_v extant_a purposely_o and_o large_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n walafridus_n a_o other_o of_o that_o time_n give_v flat_a evidence_n against_o your_o change_v of_o substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n when_o he_o say_v garetio_fw-la in_o caena_fw-la quam_fw-la ante_fw-la traditionem_fw-la svam_fw-la ultimam_fw-la cum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la christus_fw-la habuit_fw-la post_fw-la paschae_fw-la veteris_fw-la solemnia_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la svi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la in_o panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la substantia_fw-la eisdem_fw-la discipulis_fw-la tradidit_fw-la in_o the_o supper_n which_o christ_n have_v with_o his_o disciple_n last_o before_o he_o be_v betray_v after_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o old_a passeover_n he_o deliver_v to_o the_o same_o disciple_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o so_o do_v druthmarus_n report_v our_o saviour_n act_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n in_o these_o word_n matth._n transferens_fw-la spiritualiter_fw-la panem_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la suum_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la in_o sanguinem_fw-la christ_n change_v the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n and_o the_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n spiritual_o and_o so_o paschasius_fw-la though_o you_o have_v here_o &_o there_o interlace_v that_o book_n to_o help_v yourselves_o and_o print_v it_o under_o the_o name_n of_o rabanus_n as_o well_o as_o of_o paschasius_fw-la 28._o panis_n confirmat_fw-la cor_fw-la hominis_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la letificat_fw-la etc._n etc._n propter_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o eadem_fw-la substantia_fw-la jure_fw-la celebratur_fw-la hoc_fw-la mysterium_fw-la salutis_fw-la bread_n confirm_v and_o wine_n cheer_v the_o hart_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o in_o that_o substance_n be_v this_o mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n worthy_o celebrate_v waleramus_fw-la bishop_n of_o medburg_n a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n continue_v the_o same_o doctrine_n though_o some_o italian_n than_o begin_v to_o fortify_v their_o new_a conceit_n of_o show_n without_o substance_n his_o word_n be_v 65._o materiae_fw-la vel_fw-la substantia_fw-la sacrificij_fw-la non_fw-la simpla_fw-la est_fw-la sicut_fw-la nec_fw-la pontifex_fw-la solius_fw-la divinae_fw-la vel-humanae_a solius_fw-la substantiae_fw-la est_fw-la est_fw-la ergo_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o pontifice_fw-la quam_fw-la in_o sacrificio_fw-la divina_fw-la substantia_fw-la est_fw-la &_o terrena_fw-la terrena_fw-la in_o utroque_fw-la est_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la corporaliter_fw-la vel_fw-la localiter_fw-la videri_fw-la potest_fw-la divina_fw-la in_o utroque_fw-la verbum_fw-la invisibile_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o principio_fw-la erat_fw-la deus_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la the_o matter_n or_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o single_a christ._n as_o also_o the_o high_a priest_n
forge_v their_o corporal_a eat_n with_o tooth_n or_o join_v arm_n in_o arm_n with_o the_o capernite_n then_o you_o differ_v from_o the_o capernite_v in_o see_v but_o not_o in_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ._n whether_o a_o man_n may_v not_o carnal_o eat_v that_o which_o he_o neither_o see_v nor_o taste_v let_v the_o jesuit_n consult_v the_o cook_n cook_n athan._n in_o illud_fw-la quicunque_fw-la dixeris_fw-la verbum_fw-la in_o filium_fw-la hominis_fw-la hominis_fw-la chrysân_fw-mi johan_fw-mi homil_n 45._o 45._o orig._n in_o levit._n hom_n 7._o theophi_fw-la in_o 6._o johannis_n johannis_n cypr._n de_fw-fr caena_fw-la domini_fw-la domini_fw-la august_n in_o psalm_n 98._o 98._o oecume_v in_o 6â_n johannis_n johannis_n beda_n in_o 6._o johannis_n if_o christ_n mean_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n shall_v eat_v his_o flesh_n by_o faith_n they_o be_v capernites_n that_o bring_v their_o mouth_n to_o eat_v it_o though_o they_o neither_o see_v it_o nor_o taste_v it_o there_o may_v be_v many_o difference_n in_o eat_v but_o all_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n with_o tooth_n &_o jaw_n be_v caperniticall_a caperniticall_a not_o one_o that_o be_v ancient_a ancient_a for_o that_o you_o misconstrue_v some_o that_o be_v ancient_a but_o their_o true_a meaning_n be_v against_o it_o it_o mo_z saint_n than_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o calendar_n four_o late_a grecian_n urge_v the_o letter_n but_o to_o no_o such_o end_n as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v damasâib_n 4._o cap._n 14._o niceâ_n synod_n 2._o actio_fw-la 6._o theophil_n in_o 26._o matth._n euthymius_n in_o matth._n cap._n 64._o aug._n âpist_v 118._o chrysost._n homil_n 29._o in_o 2._o cor._n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o §_o quid_fw-la sit_fw-la leo._n serm_n 6._o de_fw-la ieââio_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la tertul._n the_o resurrect_a carnis_fw-la cyril_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o in_o johanâ_n it_o may_v be_v you_o never_o understand_v they_o they_o it_o be_v no_o sâame_n for_o we_o to_o suffer_v as_o christ_n do_v nor_o glory_n for_o you_o to_o do_v as_o judas_n do_v the_o meaning_n of_o damascen_n and_o other_o after_o he_o in_o press_v the_o letter_n euthymius_n in_o matth._n cap._n 64._o he_o urge_v the_o word_n lest_o the_o sign_n shall_v seem_v to_o be_v without_o virtue_n theophil_n in_o 6._o johannis_n not_o a_o figure_n only_o that_o be_v not_o a_o idle_a sign_n without_o fruit_n and_o effect_n no_o figure_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v all_o figure_n abolish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n in_o flesh_n the_o defender_n of_o image_n will_v not_o have_v the_o sacrament_n call_v a_o image_n of_o christ._n christ._n extat_fw-la in_o 2._o synod_n nicen._n actio_fw-la 6._o the_o cause_n why_o the_o grecian_n press_v the_o letter_n be_v nothing_o near_o the_o jesuite_n real_a presence_n damasce_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o this_o epiphanius_n be_v as_o earnest_n for_o paint_a and_o carve_a image_n as_o the_o elder_a be_v against_o they_o they_o nicen_n synod_n 2._o actio_fw-la 6._o 6._o this_o epiphanius_n may_v have_v be_v a_o jesuit_n for_o his_o lusty_a crake_v crake_v chrysost._n in_o matt._n hom_n 83_o 83_o idem_fw-la hom_n 17._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la heb._n heb._n gelas._n consra_fw-fr eutichen_n eutichen_n theod._n dial_n 2._o dyonis_n ecclesiast_fw-la hierach_n cap_n 3._o nazâanz_n in_o apologââââ_n â_o apostâl_n consâââ_n li._n 6._o ca._n 3._o macar_n hâ_n 27._o amârâs_n dânâfââie_n e._n 1._o ca._n 48._o 48._o august_n oââogintarum_fw-la quaeâionum_fw-la cap._n 61._o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o image_n of_o christ_n death_n and_o passion_n passion_n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o §_o sacrifiâium_fw-la sigebert_n in_o a_o 885._o regino_n li._n 2._o a_o 868._o chrono_fw-it canâââ_n if_o these_o grecian_n have_v be_v of_o the_o jesuit_n opinion_n the_o matter_n have_v not_o be_v great_a but_o now_o they_o be_v not_o how_o the_o late_a grecian_n that_o press_v the_o letter_n may_v be_v understand_v the_o jesuite_n trust_v more_o to_o their_o practice_n then_o to_o their_o authority_n otherwise_o their_o hold_n be_v very_o slender_a the_o father_n abuse_a thât_n be_v allege_v for_o the_o âeâ_n eat_v the_o fleâh_n of_o christ_n with_o tooth_n and_o âaweâ_n the_o rule_n in_o interprâteth_v all_o the_o father_n that_o seem_v to_o say_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v eat_v with_o our_o mouth_n this_o rule_n for_o the_o sign_n to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v proper_a to_o sacrament_n their_o own_o rule_n in_o all_o reason_n be_v to_o limit_v their_o own_o speech_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o sâgnes_n &_o not_o of_o tâe_v thing_n themselves_o oâ_n else_o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n in_o the_o âathers_n three_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o name_n of_o the_o element_n change_v after_o consecration_n consecration_n theod._n dial_n 1._o 1._o tertul._n adver_v iâdaeos_fw-la iâdaeos_fw-la cypr._n the_o unct_n chrismatis_fw-la chrismatis_fw-la ambr._n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap_n 4._o 4._o de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi dâst_n 2_o ¶_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la quod_fw-la chrysost._n ad_fw-la caesar._n mânââl_n mânââl_n rolaâ_n de_fw-fr ins._n clâriâ_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 31._o 31._o bârtram_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o saâg_v dom._n dom._n august_n ad_fw-la boniâac_n episâ_n 23._o can_v there_o be_v a_o plain_a rule_n to_o keep_v we_o fâom_n rasâ_n mistake_v the_o father_n father_n contra_fw-la adimant_n cap._n 12._o the_o father_n after_o consecration_n never_o call_v the_o bread_n by_o any_o other_o name_n than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n still_o remain_v the_o bread_n remain_v after_o consecration_n in_o his_o proper_a and_o former_a nature_n and_o substance_n substance_n gelas._n contra_fw-la eutichen_n eutichen_n theod._n dial_n 2._o 2._o ambros._n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 3._o 3._o iâen_n li._n 4_o c._n 32._o 32._o et_fw-fr cap_n 34._o 34._o origen_n in_o 15._o matth._n matth._n epipha_n in_o anchoraâo_n anchoraâo_n cypr._n de_fw-fr caenae_n domini_fw-la domini_fw-la chrysost._n ad_fw-la cesâr_n monach._n monach._n aug._n serm_n ad_fw-la infant_n infant_n idem_fw-la de_fw-la doctr_n christ._n li._n 3._o ca._n 5._o 5._o extat_fw-la in_o 2._o synod_n nicen._n actio_fw-la 6._o 6._o bertram_z the_o corp_n &_o sanguine_a we_o ourselves_o can_v speak_v no_o plain_a word_n than_o the_o father_n do_v before_o we_o against_o the_o jesuit_n error_n the_o power_n &_o operation_n of_o the_o sign_n their_o power_n and_o operation_n change_v cause_v the_o change_n of_o their_o name_n though_o their_o substance_n remain_v remain_v cypr._n de_fw-fr unctio_fw-la chrismââ_n chrismââ_n ambr._n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la lib._n 6_o cap._n 1._o 1._o ibidem_fw-la li._n 4._o cap._n 4._o 4._o ibidem_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 1._o 1._o celâs_n contra_fw-la eâtichen_n eâtichen_n hilar._n de_fw-fr triâit_fw-la lib._n 8._o 8._o idem_fw-la in_o psal_n 127._o 127._o leo_n de_fw-fr cons_n disâ_n 2._o â_o in_o quibus_fw-la quibus_fw-la ãâã_d hom_n 83._o in_o mâââh_n mâââh_n august_n traât_fw-la in_o âââan_n 26._o 26._o iâem_fw-la de_fw-la cons_n do_v 2._o §_o qui_fw-fr manducat_fw-la manducat_fw-la idem_fw-la in_o psal_n 77._o 77._o idem_fw-la track_v in_o johan._n 27._o 27._o euthym._n in_o maââ_n cap_n 64._o we_o must_v not_o look_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sign_n but_o unto_o the_o virtue_n of_o they_o they_o the_o âd_a dial_n 2._o 2._o ambros._n de_fw-fr sacraâenâis_fw-la âib_fw-la 4._o cap._n 4._o the_o natural_a and_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v eat_v with_o tooth_n tooth_n mark_n 7._o nothing_o can_v enter_v both_o tâe_v hart_n and_o the_o belly_n belly_n cor._n 6._o 6._o mat._n 15._o 15._o mark_v 7._o 1._o cor._n 8._o rom_n 17._o 17._o heb._n 13._o 13._o joâ_a 6._o 6._o ephes._n 3_o 3_o chââsost_n hom_n 43._o in_o loân_n loân_n idem_fw-la ex_fw-la variis_fw-la ãâã_d in_o mat_n 9_o 9_o ambros._n de_fw-fr ijs_fw-la qui_fw-la ââsteriis_fw-la ãâã_d ãâã_d de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi ãâã_d 2_o â_o non_fw-it esâaâis_fw-la esâaâis_fw-la cyprian_a de_fw-fr caena_n doââ_n doââ_n cyril_n lib._n 3._o in_o iâhan_n cap._n 28._o 28._o augâle_a cons_n do_v 2._o §_o verum_fw-la sub_fw-la sigma_fw-la sigma_fw-la idem_fw-la de_fw-la verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la in_o eâââg_n lâcââ_n sermo_fw-la 33._o 33._o idem_fw-la tract_n in_o johan._n 25._o 25._o bertram_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sanguine_fw-la domini_fw-la christ_n be_v press_v with_o tooth_n swallow_v with_o jaw_n or_o receive_v into_o the_o belly_n their_o own_o law_n deâesteth_v it_o for_o a_o heresy_n heresy_n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o ¶_o non_o isle_n panis_fw-la &_o ¶_o âribus_fw-la gradibus_fw-la glossa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o ¶_o ego_fw-la berenganius_fw-la glossa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la you_o must_v not_o only_o answer_v but_o your_o answer_n must_v be_v sound_a and_o good_a a_o man_n may_v better_o take_v hot_a for_o cold_a and_o âower_n for_o sweet_a than_o substance_n for_o accident_n accident_n and_o so_o chalk_n do_v signify_v cheese_n cheese_n first_o their_o word_n be_v plain_a and_o their_o
name_n than_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o that_o in_o earthly_a matter_n or_o essence_n they_o be_v real_o convert_v into_o those_o divine_a thing_n as_o you_o false_o gather_v but_o for_o that_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a &_o usual_a both_o nature_n and_o substance_n they_o have_v in_o they_o &_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o fruit_n effect_n and_o force_v of_o christ_n flesh_n wound_v &_o blood_n shed_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o because_o the_o people_n shall_v regard_v not_o the_o creature_n which_o they_o see_v but_o the_o grace_n which_o they_o believe_v therefore_o the_o father_n every_o where_o without_o exception_n call_v the_o element_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o inward_a and_o heavenly_a virtue_n that_o be_v annex_v to_o they_o and_o confer_v with_o they_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o word_n &_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n this_o be_v the_o first_o rule_v which_o you_o shall_v have_v observe_v error_n the_o next_o be_v that_o whensoever_o they_o teach_v and_o propose_v the_o dignity_n propriety_n or_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o mean_v not_o the_o creature_n which_o our_o eye_n and_o taste_n do_v better_o judge_v of_o than_o their_o tongue_n or_o wit_n can_v teach_v we_o but_o that_o other_o divine_a lyfe-giving_a and_o soule-saving_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n take_v hold_v on_o and_o possess_v more_o real_o and_o effectual_o than_o if_o it_o be_v chammed_a in_o our_o mouth_n or_o bury_v in_o our_o stomach_n as_o you_o gross_o conceive_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o high_a and_o heavenly_a these_o two_o rule_n remember_v a_o very_a mean_a scholar_n may_v soon_o discharge_v the_o burden_n of_o all_o your_o allegation_n for_o either_o you_o mistake_v the_o one_o part_n for_o the_o other_o observation_n suppose_v that_o to_o be_v corporal_a which_o in_o deed_n be_v spiritual_a or_o else_o you_o urge_v the_o name_n which_o the_o sign_n bear_v for_o similitude_n as_o âarnâstily_o to_o all_o intent_n as_o ãâã_d be_v be_v the_o thing_n itself_o which_o cause_v you_o to_o ãâã_d so_o many_o text_n and_o to_o stray_v so_o far_o from_o truth_n that_o no_o sound_n can_v recall_v you_o phi._n away_o with_o your_o new_a find_v observation_n the_o catholic_a church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n promise_v for_o her_o direction_n and_o therefore_o the_o will_v none_o of_o your_o wise_a invention_n to_o qualify_v the_o father_n speech_n learn_v you_o rather_o at_o her_o hand_n to_o believe_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n error_n who_o first_o appoint_v this_o sacrament_n and_o pronounce_v it_o to_o be_v himself_o without_o sign_n or_o figure_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n not_o spiritual_a or_o metaphorical_a but_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v break_v and_o the_o same_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o i_o trust_v you_o will_v confess_v be_v his_o natural_a and_o local_a have_v body_n and_o blood_n theo._n the_o question_n be_v not_o sacrament_n whether_o that_o be_v his_o natural_a body_n which_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n but_o when_o he_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n whether_o he_o substantial_o change_v the_o dead_a element_n into_o himself_o &_o make_v the_o creature_n become_v the_o creator_n or_o whether_o he_o annex_v his_o truth_n to_o the_o sign_n and_o grace_n to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o require_v both_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o make_v the_o promise_n and_o his_o power_n to_o perform_v the_o speech_n and_o therefore_o we_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o be_v very_o needful_a in_o ordain_v this_o sacrament_n even_o in_o such_o manner_n and_o order_n as_o they_o be_v speak_v that_o the_o sign_n may_v have_v the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o that_o he_o change_v substance_n with_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o deify_v the_o creature_n that_o his_o speech_n do_v not_o infer_v and_o that_o as_o yet_o we_o do_v not_o believe_v except_o you_o can_v show_v we_o how_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v first_o make_v of_o a_o woman_n be_v now_o become_v to_o be_v make_v of_o bread_n and_o a_o dead_a and_o senseless_a creature_n exalt_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n phi._n we_o do_v not_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v substantial_o convert_v into_o christ_n christ._n or_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o the_o bread_n be_v abolish_v &_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o come_v the_o glorious_a flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n we_o hold_v the_o creator_n be_v now_o where_o the_o creature_n be_v but_o the_o dead_a element_n be_v not_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n you_o will_v fain_o catch_v we_o at_o such_o a_o advantage_n theo._n how_o you_o can_v avoid_v it_o body_n i_o yet_o perceive_v not_o for_o if_o the_o bread_n be_v now_o christ_n which_o before_o it_o be_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o bread_n be_v make_v christ_n and_o by_o consequent_a a_o dead_a element_n be_v now_o become_v or_o make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o i_o think_v will_v hardly_o stand_v with_o the_o very_a first_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n phi._n you_o press_v the_o letter_n against_o both_o reason_n and_o truth_n for_o the_o one_o be_v say_v to_o be_v convert_v or_o change_v into_o the_o other_o because_o the_o one_o displace_v and_o succeed_v the_o other_o &_o so_o be_v it_o a_o change_n rather_o of_o the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o than_o a_o conversion_n of_o the_o one_o into_o the_o other_o if_o you_o take_v conversion_n proper_o as_o the_o philosopher_n do_v theo._n christ_n death_n not_o say_v where_o the_o bread_n be_v there_o be_v now_o my_o body_n but_o this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n and_o since_o before_o consecration_n it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n and_o now_o by_o repeat_v the_o word_n be_v become_v his_o body_n the_o conclusion_n be_v evident_a that_o by_o your_o opinion_n the_o bread_n be_v make_v christ_n and_o so_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n phi._n you_o think_v to_o snare_v we_o with_o schoole-tricke_n but_o set_v your_o sophism_n aside_o we_o plain_o believe_v the_o sacrament_n be_v christ._n theo._n you_o must_v believe_v the_o bread_n be_v christ_n which_o as_o yet_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o do_v god_n i_o mean_v not_o to_o think_v that_o a_o dead_a and_o dumb_a creature_n may_v be_v god_n phi._n do_v we_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v god_n theo._n you_o must_v aver_v it_o if_o you_o stick_v to_o the_o letter_n of_o christ_n word_n for_o he_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n as_o you_o enforce_v it_o this_o be_v myself_o now_o he_o be_v god_n phi._n i_o think_v i_o shall_v be_v even_o with_o you_o at_o land_n end_v christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n somewhat_o but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n where_o now_o be_v the_o force_n of_o your_o argument_n theo._n even_o where_o it_o be_v phi._n why_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v not_o mean_v bread_n or_o any_o other_o creature_n theo._n that_o this_o must_v be_v somewhat_o else_o nothing_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n &_o so_o you_o lose_v not_o only_o the_o bread_n but_o also_o the_o body_n phi._n nay_o he_o say_v this_o be_v and_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v somewhat_o it_o can_v not_o be_v nothing_o theo._n it_o be_v well_o you_o have_v find_v it_o i_o say_v so_o before_o you_o then_o this_o be_v my_o body_n what_o this_o be_v it_o bread_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o or_o something_o else_o phi._n he_o speak_v of_o that_o nothing_o which_o he_o have_v in_o his_o hand_n theo._n you_o mean_v not_o long_o before_o phi._n in_o deed_n you_o say_v he_o have_v at_o that_o present_a when_o he_o speak_v the_o word_n nothing_o in_o his_o hand_n and_o so_o you_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o be_v his_o body_n theo._n hinder_v not_o our_o course_n with_o matter_n impertinent_a to_o this_o place_n the_o demonstrative_a this_o note_v that_o which_o christ_n then_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n as_o well_o as_o that_o which_o you_o think_v he_o then_o hold_v in_o his_o hand_n choose_v whether_o you_o will_v of_o force_n the_o thing_n must_v be_v all_o one_o for_o that_o which_o he_o hold_v that_o he_o give_v and_o of_o that_o which_o he_o first_o hold_v and_o after_o give_v christ._n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n phi._n he_o do_v so_o theo._n what_o be_v it_o phi._n somewhat_o it_o be_v whatsoever_o it_o be_v theo._n what_o somewhat_o do_v you_o say_v it_o be_v phi._n what_o if_o i_o can_v tell_v theo._n then_o must_v you_o seek_v far_o for_o your_o change_v of_o substance_n the_o word_n of_o
christ_n if_o you_o know_v not_o whereof_o he_o speak_v prove_v no_o conversion_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o his_o body_n for_o unless_o this_o be_v take_v to_o import_v the_o bread_n the_o bread_n by_o those_o word_n can_v not_o be_v change_v and_o if_o not_o by_o these_o then_o sure_o by_o none_o phi._n i_o see_v your_o drift_n you_o fetch_v about_o to_o force_v i_o to_o confess_v that_o by_o the_o strict_a coherence_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n place_n the_o bread_n be_v christ_n &_o since_o that_o proposition_n in_o precise_a speech_n be_v untrue_a you_o will_v come_v in_o with_o your_o figure_n theo._n and_o your_o drift_n be_v as_o open_v that_o have_v devise_v a_o real_a and_o carnal_a presence_n to_o yourselves_o by_o colour_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o perceive_v the_o same_o to_o be_v no_o way_n consequent_a to_o the_o letter_n which_o you_o pretend_v lest_o you_o shall_v be_v disprove_v to_o your_o face_n you_o will_v not_o admit_v the_o perfect_a and_o plain_o context_n of_o christ_n word_n but_o stand_v hover_v about_o other_o sophistical_a illusion_n which_o will_v not_o help_v you_o for_o we_o have_v the_o full_a confession_n of_o scripture_n &_o father_n against_o you_o that_o the_o pronoune_n this_o in_o christ_n word_n must_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o bread_n and_o to_o nothing_o else_o the_o lord_n take_v bread_n and_o when_o he_o have_v give_v thanks_n he_o break_v no_o doubt_n the_o bread_n that_o he_o take_v and_o give_v to_o the_o disciple_n the_o selfsame_o that_o he_o break_v say_v christ._n take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o that_o i_o give_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n what_o this_o can_v our_o saviour_n mean_a but_z this_o that_o he_o give_v this_o that_o he_o break_v this_o that_o he_o take_v which_o by_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v bread_n if_o you_o suppose_v that_o he_o take_v bread_n but_o break_v it_o not_o or_o break_v it_o but_o give_v it_o not_o or_o give_v it_o his_o disciple_n to_o eat_v but_o tell_v they_o not_o this_o which_o he_o give_v they_o but_o some_o other_o thing_n beside_o that_o be_v his_o body_n you_o make_v the_o lord_n supper_n a_o merry_a jest_n text_n where_o the_o late_a end_n start_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o the_o middle_n from_o the_o both_o the_o pronoune_n this_o of_o itself_o infer_v nothing_o and_o therefore_o except_o you_o name_v the_o bread_n which_o christ_n point_v unto_o when_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n you_o confirm_v not_o the_o faith_n but_o amaze_v the_o wit_n of_o your_o follower_n s._n paul_n propose_v the_o lord_n supper_n to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n express_v that_o very_a word_n which_o we_o say_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o gospel_n import_n as_o 11._o often_o as_o you_o shall_v eat_v say_v he_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v this_o cup_n you_o show_v forth_o the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v the_o 10._o bread_n which_o he_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o christ_n body_n 11._o let_v a_o man_n examine_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n and_o drink_n of_o that_o cup_n for_o whosoever_o shall_v eat_v this_o bread_n and_o drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n unworthy_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n bread_n so_o that_o as_o well_o by_o the_o coherence_n of_o the_o former_a word_n in_o the_o description_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o by_o the_o manifest_a adjection_n which_o s._n paul_n put_v to_o the_o demonstrative_a we_o conclude_v our_o saviour_n pronounce_v of_o the_o bread_n that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n the_o refer_v of_o this_o to_o the_o bread_n all_o the_o catholic_a father_n that_o ever_o write_v with_o pen_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n acknowledge_v with_o one_o consent_n justinus_n 2._o we_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o sanctify_a food_n which_o nourish_v our_o flesh_n and_o our_o blood_n be_v the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o that_o jesu._n tertullian_n jedaeos_fw-la so_o christ_n teach_v we_o call_v bread_n his_o body_n and_o discuss_v the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n marcionem_fw-la why_o say_v he_o do_v christ_n there_o call_v bread_n his_o body_n austen_n manducas_fw-la that_o which_o your_o faith_n require_v to_o be_v teach_v the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n his_o blood_n cyprian_a chrismat_n our_o lord_n at_o his_o table_n give_v to_o the_o disciple_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n bread_n and_o wine_n on_o the_o cross_n he_o yield_v his_o body_n to_o the_o soldier_n hand_n to_o be_v wound_v that_o his_o apostle_n may_v teach_v all_o nation_n how_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n ireneus_fw-la 34._o how_o shall_v it_o appear_v to_o they_o that_o the_o bread_n on_o which_o they_o give_v thanks_n be_v the_o body_n of_o their_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n his_o blood_n if_o they_o grant_v not_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n 57_o how_o do_v the_o lord_n right_o if_o a_o other_o be_v his_o father_n take_v bread_n of_o this_o condition_n that_o be_v usual_a among_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v his_o body_n hierom_n 2._o let_v we_o learn_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o the_o lord_n break_v &_o give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v the_o lord_n body_n himself_o say_v to_o they_o take_v you_o eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n athan._n or_o at_o lest_o the_o commentary_n that_o be_v extant_a in_o his_o name_n 11._o what_o be_v the_o bread_n the_o body_n of_o christ._n epiphan_n anchorato_n of_o that_o which_o be_v round_o in_o figure_n &_o senseless_a in_o power_n the_o lord_n will_v say_v by_o grace_n this_o be_v my_o body_n cyrill_n 4._o christ_n thus_o avouch_v and_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n theodorete_n â_o in_o the_o very_o give_v of_o the_o mystery_n he_o call_v bread_n his_o body_n bread_n and_o of_o all_o other_o yourselves_o may_v not_o shrink_v from_o this_o resolution_n of_o christ_n word_n the_o sure_a hold_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n though_o it_o be_v not_o much_o stand_v only_o on_o this_o settle_v for_o what_o word_n have_v you_o beside_o thâse_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v from_o his_o former_a substance_n uery_o none_n then_o if_o in_o these_o word_n which_o shall_v work_v the_o change_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o bread_n how_o can_v that_o which_o be_v no_o way_n comprise_v in_o they_o be_v change_v by_o they_o so_o miraculous_a a_o change_n can_v not_o be_v wrought_v by_o silence_n but_o rather_o if_o any_o such_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o in_o those_o word_n must_v the_o thing_n at_o least_o be_v name_v that_o shall_v be_v change_v again_o the_o demonstrative_a this_o must_v needs_o note_v that_o which_o be_v there_o present_a on_o the_o lord_n table_n before_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v whole_o repeat_v and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v present_a under_o the_o likeness_n of_o bread_n without_o or_o before_o consecration_n ergo_fw-la the_o pronoune_n infer_v not_o christ_n but_o the_o bread_n which_o by_o your_o own_o position_n be_v not_o abolish_v but_o ibidem_fw-la in_o ultimo_fw-la instanti_fw-la prolationis_fw-la verborum_fw-la in_o the_o very_a last_o end_n &_o instant_n of_o utter_v these_o word_n and_o therefore_o remain_v in_o his_o own_o nature_n when_o the_o first_o word_n be_v pronounce_v which_o some_o not_o the_o mean_a man_n of_o your_o side_n foresee_v very_o well_o howsoever_o you_o since_o have_v take_v other_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o they_o say_v 4._o dicendum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la hoc_fw-la demonstrat_fw-la substantiam_fw-la panis_fw-la we_o must_v behold_v say_v gerson_n that_o the_o pronoune_n this_o do_v demonstrate_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o steven_n gardiner_n sophist_n christus_fw-la ait_fw-la evidenter_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la demonstrans_fw-la panem_fw-la christ_n say_v plain_o this_o be_v my_o body_n point_v to_o the_o bread_n notwithstanding_o afterward_o he_o change_v his_o mind_n in_o this_o as_o in_o many_o other_o thing_n &_o come_v to_o consr._n individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la as_o if_o christ_n have_v say_v this_o what_o be_v it_o i_o can_v not_o tell_v but_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v somewhat_o be_v my_o body_n occam_fw-la and_o other_o profound_a fellow_n of_o your_o side_n bethink_v themselves_o how_o your_o opinion_n may_v best_o agree_v with_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v the_o pronoune_n this_o must_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o 13._o body_n of_o christ_n as_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v say_v this_o my_o body_n be_v my_o body_n to_o make_v all_o cocksure_a the_o colonel_n of_o your_o scholman_n i_o mean_v the_o gloze_n resolve_v the_o doubt_n on_o this_o wife_n ibidem_fw-la solet_fw-la quaeri_fw-la quid_fw-la demonstretur_fw-la per_fw-la pronomen_fw-la
example_n without_o warrant_n of_o god_n or_o man_n phi._n theodoret_n have_v set_v you_o uppe_o in_o your_o ruff_n but_o i_o will_v you_o know_v it_o in_o this_o case_n we_o care_v neither_o for_o theodoret_n nor_o you_o if_o that_o be_v his_o opinion_n as_o it_o be_v you_o theo._n and_o who_o have_v put_v you_o into_o your_o ruff_n that_o you_o not_o only_o despise_v that_o learned_a and_o ancient_a bishop_n but_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o he_o which_o then_o so_o believe_v and_o you_o can_v avoid_v at_o this_o day_n except_o you_o will_v be_v eutichian_o phi._n the_o mayor_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o sâund_v as_o you_o think_v it_o theo._n yet_o do_v gelasius_n and_o theodoret_n confound_v that_o error_n with_o that_o comparison_n dico_fw-la and_o s._n augustine_n long_o before_o thâm_n do_v urge_v the_o same_o this_o be_v it_o that_o we_o say_v this_o be_v it_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v we_o labour_v to_o confirm_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o visible_a kind_n of_o element_n and_o the_o invisible_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n even_o as_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o god_n and_o man_n eutichian_o for_o so_o much_o as_o every_o thing_n contain_v the_o nature_n and_o truth_n of_o those_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o consist_v by_o which_o rule_n it_o be_v certain_a there_o musâ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o nature_n truth_n and_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n even_o as_o in_o christ_n person_n either_o nature_n have_v his_o truth_n and_o substance_n without_o confusion_n or_o distraction_n phi._n we_o have_v father_n to_o the_o contrary_a if_o the_o time_n do_v serve_v to_o produce_v they_o as_o anon_o i_o will_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n what_o be_v this_o to_o leo_n theophil_n leo_n in_o few_o word_n abbridge_v the_o sumâ_n of_o this_o reason_n and_o say_v the_o follower_n of_o eutiche_n do_v in_o vain_a with_o their_o mouth_n receâne_v the_o sacrament_n since_o with_o their_o heart_n they_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n humane_a nature_n and_o answer_v amen_o to_o no_o purpose_n so_o long_o as_o they_o dispute_v against_o that_o which_o they_o will_v seâm_v to_o enjoy_v by_o receive_v the_o seal_n and_o pledge_v thereof_o in_o the_o church_n with_o other_o phi._n this_o be_v your_o commentary_n besides_o the_o text_n his_o word_n be_v the_o self_n same_o body_n which_o we_o believe_v with_o faith_n original_n be_v receive_v with_o mouth_n which_o you_o can_v interpret_v to_o be_v mâant_a of_o the_o bread_n for_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o believe_v with_o hart_n and_o against_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n body_n not_o against_o the_o bread_n do_v the_o follower_n of_o eutiche_n dispute_v theo._n do_v leoâaie_o âaie_z the_o selâ_n same_o body_n phi._n he_o say_v hoc_fw-la ore_fw-la sumitur_fw-la quod_fw-la fide_fw-la creditur_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n which_o with_o our_o faith_n be_v believe_v and_o that_o can_v be_v the_o bread_n the._n much_o less_o may_v it_o be_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ._n for_o then_o leo_n have_v mighty_o confirm_v &_o not_o confute_v eutiche_n opinion_n his_o error_n be_v that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n be_v swallow_v up_o of_o his_o divinity_n and_o so_o change_v that_o it_o be_v now_o no_o natural_a body_n against_o this_o if_o leo_n shall_v have_v oppose_v your_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o christ_n body_n be_v without_o quantity_n error_n shape_n circumscription_n distinction_n of_o part_n and_o all_o other_o condition_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n he_o have_v be_v a_o proctor_n âor_a eutiches_n impiety_n not_o a_o confuter_n of_o it_o neither_o can_v eutich_v himself_o have_v wish_v a_o better_a defence_n for_o his_o heresy_n than_o the_o confession_n âf_n such_o a_o bodâe_n as_o you_o imagine_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o therefore_o you_o haâk_v that_o hoc_fw-la ilfavoured_o when_o you_o make_v leo_n rather_o a_o consenter_n with_o eutiche_n than_o a_o disprover_n of_o he_o with_o your_o fantastical_a presence_n which_o be_v a_o approbation_n and_o no_o refutation_n of_o eutiches_n error_n phil._n what_o a_o slander_n this_o be_v that_o the_o real_a presence_n shall_v be_v a_o refuge_n for_o eutichâs_n error_n theoph._n such_o a_o slander_n as_o with_o all_o your_o cunning_n you_o shall_v never_o wipe_v away_o phi._n do_v we_o not_o affirm_v the_o circumscription_n substance_n of_o chrisâes_n humane_a flesh_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the._n such_o a_o substance_n as_o eutiche_n himself_o imagine_v have_v neither_o proportion_n of_o shape_n nor_o position_n of_o part_n nor_o repletion_n of_o place_n nor_o any_o condition_n incident_a to_o a_o natural_a body_n but_o the_o godly_a father_n be_v far_o from_o urge_v such_o a_o substance_n against_o eutiche_n they_o press_v he_o with_o the_o bodily_a shape_n circumscription_n extension_n and_o perfection_n of_o christ_n flesh_n as_o well_o in_o all_o other_o requisite_n as_o in_o substance_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o among_o other_o argument_n they_o bring_v as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o sacrament_n for_o a_o resemblance_n and_o demonstrance_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o chrisâ_n that_o as_o the_o bread_n after_o consecration_n keep_v his_o quantity_n quality_n shape_n and_o substance_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v unite_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n that_o work_v in_o the_o sacrament_n so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o assumption_n retain_v his_o former_a perfection_n proportion_n figure_n and_o substance_n lose_v no_o poinââ_n nor_o part_n of_o his_o humane_a nature_n but_o only_o replenish_v with_o immortal_a glory_n sense_n this_o must_v be_v leoes_n hoc_fw-la if_o he_o will_v do_v any_o good_a with_o allege_v the_o sacrament_n against_o eutiche_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o austen_n gelasius_n and_o theodoret_n otherwise_o if_o he_o do_v but_o mention_v your_o real_a presence_n he_o open_v the_o gap_n and_o levell_v the_o way_n to_o eutiches_n fury_n and_o run_v headlong_o against_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n servant_n and_o successor_n that_o use_v the_o same_o argument_n to_o confute_v euâiches_n with_o a_o manifest_a contradiction_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n phi._n i_o bring_v you_o leoes_n word_n theo._n leoes_n word_n have_v nothing_o in_o they_o to_o cross_v that_o sense_n which_o i_o establish_v hoc_fw-la signify_v any_o thing_n and_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o to_o the_o proportion_n rather_o between_o christ_n &_o the_o sacrament_n in_o that_o they_o believe_v no_o other_o thing_n of_o christ_n than_o they_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n &_o receive_v with_o their_o mouth_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n the_o perfect_a shape_n &_o substance_n of_o bread_n after_o consecration_n &_o consequent_o they_o must_v hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n of_o christ_n humanity_n after_o his_o ascension_n phi._n if_o you_o use_v this_o trade_n you_o may_v pervert_v all_o the_o father_n writing_n and_o make_v what_o sense_n you_o listen_v to_o their_o say_n theo._n pervert_v they_o no_o more_o than_o we_o do_v and_o you_o shall_v never_o evert_v the_o main_a doctrine_n as_o you_o have_v do_v we_o measure_v âheir_a word_n by_o their_o own_o warrant_n and_o suffer_v nât_v a_o phrase_n here_o and_o there_o which_o may_v be_v well_o revoke_v to_o their_o rule_n to_o undermine_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o faith_n phi._n no_o more_o do_v we_o theo._n why_o then_o rage_n you_o to_o hear_v uâ_n say_v that_o these_o few_o place_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v for_o eat_a christ_n body_n with_o your_o mouth_n and_o jaw_n may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o sign_n call_v by_o those_o name_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o thing_n themselves_o phi._n you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o be_v judge_n and_o to_o pronounce_v at_o your_o pleasure_n when_o the_o â_z shall_v belong_v to_o the_o one_o and_o when_o to_o the_o other_o so_o that_o no_o father_n shall_v say_v any_o thing_n against_o your_o heresy_n but_o yet_o will_v by_o and_o by_o turn_v it_o and_o wind_n it_o i_o know_v not_o whither_o theo._n nothing_o more_o hinder_v the_o search_n for_o truth_n than_o a_o desire_n to_o lie_v we_o show_v you_o the_o general_a admonition_n of_o the_o father_n themselves_o that_o after_o consecration_n they_o call_v the_o visible_a sign_n no_o long_o by_o their_o wont_a name_n but_o by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n who_o sign_n they_o be_v and_o who_o virtue_n they_o have_v this_o rule_n we_o say_v be_v then_o to_o take_v place_n when_o the_o speech_n which_o we_o find_v in_o a_o father_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o thing_n themselves_o will_v be_v both_o absurd_a and_o repugnant_a to_o
34._o the_o bread_n have_v the_o invocation_n of_o god_n be_v now_o no_o common_a bread_n but_o a_o eucharist_n or_o thanksgiving_n consist_v of_o two_o thing_n a_o terrestrial_a &_o a_o celestial_a so_o ambrose_n 9_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o that_o which_o nature_n have_v frame_v but_o that_o which_o blessing_n have_v hallow_v they_o do_v not_o avouch_v the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v simple_o no_o bread_n they_o teach_v it_o to_o be_v no_o natural_a nor_o usual_a bread_n because_o the_o virtue_n power_n and_o force_v of_o christ_n flesh_n be_v unite_v to_o it_o and_o receive_v with_o it_o though_o to_o sight_n and_o taââ_n it_o keep_v the_o show_n of_o nothing_o else_o but_o bread_n phi._n what_o be_v species_n panis_fw-la which_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o sense_n but_o the_o utter_a appearance_n of_o bread_n when_o the_o substance_n be_v alter_v theo._n do_v species_n signify_v a_o âhape_n without_o substance_n philand_n it_o signify_v the_o shape_n and_o not_o the_o substance_n theo._n every_o creature_n have_v his_o substance_n join_v with_o his_o sensible_a shape_n and_o form_n and_o therefore_o though_o the_o one_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o other_o yet_o the_o one_o infer_v the_o other_o by_o the_o very_a necessity_n of_o nature_n neither_o have_v god_n give_v we_o any_o perfect_a trial_n of_o substance_n than_o by_o sight_n and_o sense_n which_o be_v sure_a enough_o because_o show_v without_o substance_n be_v no_o creature_n philand_n but_o this_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v miraculous_a and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o species_n in_o the_o father_n do_v signify_v a_o show_n without_o substance_n or_o as_o our_o school_n rather_o like_a to_o say_v for_o perspicuity_n sake_n accident_n without_o a_o subject_n theophil_n your_o school_n be_v perspicuous_a as_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n be_v light-some_a when_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o palpable_a darkness_n but_o where_o do_v any_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n take_v species_n for_o a_o show_n without_o substance_n creature_n philand_n that_o be_v âuerie_n where_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n when_o they_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n how_o prove_v you_o that_o phi._n it_o need_v no_o proof_n the_o very_a word_n do_v âo_o signify_v theophil_n the_o word_n species_n do_v no_o more_o exclude_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o species_n humana_fw-la the_o show_n shape_n and_o form_n of_o a_o man_n which_o you_o have_v do_v take_v from_o you_o the_o substance_n &_o truth_n of_o man_n nature_n which_o if_o you_o think_v it_o do_v look_v what_o answer_v you_o will_v make_v to_o he_o that_o shall_v ask_v what_o lie_v under_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n in_o you_o it_o must_v be_v the_o substance_n of_o a_o man_n or_o some_o worse_a thing_n and_o if_o you_o can_v keep_v both_o the_o shape_n and_o substance_n of_o man_n why_o may_v not_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v the_o like_a for_o all_o the_o word_n species_n which_o be_v verify_v of_o man_n and_o other_o creature_n aswell_o as_o of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o mystery_n phi._n the_o comparison_n be_v not_o like_a of_o for_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v and_o so_o be_o not_o i._o theophil_n do_v you_o not_o often_o change_v both_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a man_n i_o mean_v the_o state_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n phi._n i_o change_v as_o other_o do_v theo._n you_o can_v be_v no_o christian_n if_o you_o be_v not_o change_v from_o the_o state_n in_o which_o you_o be_v bear_v you_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o servant_n of_o sin_n if_o you_o be_v renew_v and_o free_v from_o that_o then_o be_v you_o whole_o change_v phi._n this_o be_v no_o change_n substantial_a change_n such_o as_o we_o affirm_v to_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n theo._n if_o you_o will_v prove_v that_o which_o you_o affirm_v you_o may_v happen_v to_o conclude_v that_o which_o now_o you_o can_v not_o phi._n that_o be_v soon_o prove_v theo._n i_o marvel_v than_o you_o stay_v long_o before_o you_o do_v it_o and_o faint_v so_o often_o when_o you_o begin_v it_o you_o avouch_v that_o the_o word_n species_n in_o the_o father_n signify_v your_o show_n without_o substance_n and_o accident_n without_o subject_n and_o when_o the_o very_a show_n of_o man_n which_o you_o bear_v about_o you_o convince_v that_o folly_n you_o presume_v a_o substantial_a change_n to_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n to_o help_v forth_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n which_o you_o imagine_v against_o all_o learning_n &_o reason_n be_v their_o meaning_n truth_n for_o the_o word_n species_n though_o it_o be_v diverse_o use_v among_o the_o father_n and_o often_o iterate_v in_o this_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o shall_v you_o never_o bring_v we_o any_o one_o place_n where_o it_o be_v take_v for_o a_o show_n without_o substance_n and_o therefore_o by_o that_o word_n you_o can_v hardly_o infer_v the_o bread_n to_o be_v change_v in_o substance_n and_o nothing_o to_o be_v leave_v beside_o the_o accident_n saint_n ambrose_n say_v it_o import_v as_o much_o as_o a_o evident_a sight_n and_o truth_n 4._o speciem_fw-la pro_fw-la veritate_fw-la accipiendam_fw-la legimus_fw-la specie_fw-la inventus_fw-la ut_fw-la homo_fw-la we_o read_v this_o word_n species_n to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o very_a truth_n of_o a_o thing_n as_o christ_n be_v find_v not_o in_o show_n but_o in_o truth_n like_o a_o man_n and_o of_o the_o lord_n cup_n 4._o perhaps_o thou_o will_v say_v speciem_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la sed_fw-la habet_fw-la similitudinem_fw-la i_o see_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o blood_n but_o it_o have_v the_o resemblance_n which_o objection_n ambrose_n repeat_v short_o after_o in_o these_o word_n 1._o similitudinem_fw-la video_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la veritatem_fw-la i_o see_v the_o resemblance_n i_o see_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o blood_n where_o note_v that_o species_n be_v not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o only_a likeness_n and_o appearance_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o equivalent_a with_o the_o truth_n and_o nature_n of_o every_o thing_n then_o be_v show_n without_o substance_n your_o fancy_n without_o judgement_n you_o never_o receive_v any_o such_o doctrine_n from_o the_o catholic_a father_n yourselves_o have_v devise_v it_o of_o late_a since_o barbarism_n prevail_v in_o your_o school_n and_o antichrist_n be_v exalt_v in_o your_o church_n philand_n so_o species_n be_v now_o and_o then_o use_v but_o do_v that_o infer_v that_o this_o be_v the_o general_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n wheresoever_o we_o find_v it_o theo._n this_o suffice_v to_o exclude_v your_o show_n without_o substance_n creature_n unless_o you_o can_v bring_v some_o better_a enforcement_n than_o the_o very_a word_n which_o you_o can_v not_o and_o yet_o saint_n ambrose_n give_v a_o other_o use_n of_o the_o word_n and_o that_o treat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o utter_o subvert_v your_o accidental_a show_n 4._o creaturae_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la esse_fw-la veritas_fw-la sed_fw-la species_n quae_fw-la facile_fw-la soluitur_fw-la at_o que_fw-la mutatur_fw-la no_o creature_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o truth_n but_o a_o show_n or_o appearance_n which_o be_v soon_o dissolve_a and_o abolish_v in_o this_o sense_n species_n be_v all_o one_o with_o any_o creature_n or_o substance_n which_o soon_o decay_v as_o every_o mortal_a thing_n do_v and_o the_o learned_a father_n writing_n of_o the_o sacrament_n continual_o use_v the_o word_n to_o signify_v the_o nature_n and_o kind_n of_o every_o creature_n and_o not_o the_o naked_a show_n or_o accident_n saint_n ambrose_n 9_o ante_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la alia_fw-la species_n nominatur_fw-la before_o it_o be_v bless_v it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o not_o show_n but_o kind_n ibidem_fw-la gravior_fw-la est_fw-la ferri_fw-la species_n quam_fw-la aquarum_fw-la liquor_n the_o kind_n or_o nature_n of_o iron_n not_o the_o show_n of_o iron_n be_v weighty_a than_o the_o liquor_n of_o water_n ibidem_fw-la if_o the_o word_n of_o elias_n be_v able_a to_o fetch_v fire_n from_o heaven_n non_fw-la valebit_fw-la christi_fw-la sermo_fw-la ut_fw-la species_n mutet_fw-la elementorum_fw-la shall_v not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v of_o strength_n to_o change_v the_o kind_n not_o the_o shape_n of_o these_o element_n so_o do_v augustine_n likewise_o 26._o non_fw-la sic_fw-la habendam_fw-la esse_fw-la speciem_fw-la benedictione_n consecratam_fw-la quemadmodum_fw-la habetur_fw-la in_o usu_fw-la quolibet_fw-la the_o kind_n or_o element_n consecrate_v with_o blessing_n must_v not_o be_v so_o reckon_v of_o as_o it_o be_v in_o common_a use_n 77._o idem_fw-la cibus_fw-la illorum_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o noster_fw-la sed_fw-la significatione_n idem_fw-la non_fw-la specie_fw-la the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v the_o same_o food_n which_o we_o have_v but_o the_o same_o in_o signification_n not_o in_o external_a kind_n johan._n aliud_fw-la illi_fw-la aliud_fw-la nos_fw-la sed_fw-la
specie_fw-la visibili_fw-la they_o drink_v one_o thing_n we_o drink_n a_o other_o thing_n but_o in_o visible_a kind_n johan._n ibi_fw-la petra_n christus_fw-la nobis_fw-la christus_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la dei_fw-la ponitur_fw-la si_fw-mi speciem_fw-la visibilem_fw-la intendas_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la to_o they_o the_o rock_n be_v christ_n to_o we_o that_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v set_v on_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n if_o you_o look_v to_o the_o visible_a kind_n it_o be_v a_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o they_o drink_v in_o these_o place_n you_o can_v not_o interpret_v species_n a_o show_n without_o substance_n unless_o you_o will_v transubstantiate_v manna_n which_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n do_v eat_v substance_n the_o rock_n which_o they_o drink_v of_o the_o hatchet_n which_o elizeus_fw-la make_v swâm_fw-la the_o bread_n that_o be_v in_o common_a use_n without_o &_o before_o consecration_n for_o these_o thing_n austen_n and_o ambrose_n compare_v they_o with_o this_o sacrament_n do_v call_v visibiles_fw-la species_n visibles_fw-fr kind_n as_o they_o do_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n propose_v to_o the_o faithful_a at_o the_o lord_n table_n and_o be_v you_o so_o perverse_a that_o against_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o father_n ând_v signification_n of_o the_o word_n you_o will_v needs_o have_v species_n to_o be_v take_v for_o your_o miraculous_a and_o mystical_a accidence_n i_o can_v tell_v you_o they_o be_v like_a to_o shrink_v in_o this_o change_n as_o well_o as_o the_o substance_n for_o ambrose_n say_v 9_o sermo_n christi_fw-la mutat_fw-la species_n elementorum_fw-la the_o word_n of_o christ_n change_v by_o your_o interpretation_n the_o show_v of_o the_o element_n which_o be_v so_o apparent_o false_a that_o yourselves_o dare_v not_o abide_v it_o and_o therefore_o species_n must_v stand_v not_o for_o the_o outward_a form_n and_o show_n but_o for_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n say_v 11._o ut_fw-la sit_fw-la visibilis_fw-la species_n panis_fw-la multa_fw-la grana_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la consperguntur_fw-la many_o corn_n be_v knead_v together_o to_o make_v not_o the_o show_n but_o the_o visible_a kind_n or_o creature_n of_o bread_n by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o species_n with_o ancient_a writer_n in_o their_o discourse_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o a_o show_n without_o a_o substance_n as_o you_o vain_o suppose_v but_o a_o kind_n or_o creature_n which_o be_v far_o from_o accident_n hang_v in_o the_o air_n you_o know_v not_o how_o by_o miraculous_a geometry_n philand_n we_o ground_n not_o ourselves_o so_o much_o on_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o species_n as_o on_o the_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n make_v by_o virtue_n of_o consecration_n as_o all_o the_o you_o father_n witness_n theo._n it_o be_v a_o very_a simple_a foundation_n to_o build_v on_o a_o bare_a word_n which_o have_v many_o signification_n beside_o that_o and_o any_o signification_n rather_o than_o that_o which_o you_o conceive_v and_o yet_o that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o best_a foundation_n you_o have_v for_o your_o new_a find_a show_n without_o substance_n and_o as_o for_o the_o change_n of_o the_o sacred_a element_n make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o mention_v in_o the_o father_n if_o you_o do_v not_o urge_v your_o fancy_n on_o their_o phrase_n but_o examine_v their_o doctrine_n you_o shall_v soon_o spy_v your_o error_n which_o now_o you_o will_v not_o you_o be_v so_o wed_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o your_o own_o opinion_n phi._n do_v not_o all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o voice_n confess_v a_o change_n to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o element_n by_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n theo._n do_v not_o we_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o how_o can_v usual_a bread_n take_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o serve_v only_o to_o feed_v the_o body_n wonderful_a become_v a_o sacrament_n &_o instrument_n of_o heavenly_a grace_n and_o life_n to_o quicken_v and_o strengthen_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n but_o by_o some_o great_a and_o marvellous_a change_n phi._n such_o as_o none_o can_v perform_v but_o the_o mighty_a finger_n of_o god_n himself_o for_o so_o s._n ambrose_n and_o other_o to_o persuade_v this_o change_n have_v recourse_n to_o christ_n eternal_a power_n and_o truth_n theo._n yea_o very_o phi._n that_o confession_n be_v sufficient_a to_o confute_v the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o defend_v theo._n i_o see_v not_o how_o phi._n if_o the_o bread_n be_v not_o change_v from_o his_o former_a substance_n it_o can_v neither_o be_v miraculous_a wonder_n nor_o need_v the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o christ._n for_o figure_n &_o similitude_n man_n may_v make_v but_o this_o mutation_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o manner_n be_v unsearchable_a theo._n great_a power_n &_o truth_n be_v require_v for_o the_o finish_n of_o one_o sacrament_n than_o for_o the_o work_n of_o many_o miracle_n miracle_n not_o only_o the_o godly_a but_o also_o the_o wicked_a have_v diverse_a time_n wrought_v the_o sorcerer_n of_o egypt_n do_v some_o wonder_n antichrist_n have_v his_o miracle_n and_o those_o not_o a_o few_o but_o sacrament_n no_o saint_n no_o not_o the_o choose_a and_o elect_a angel_n of_o heaven_n can_v institute_v for_o who_o dare_v promise_n who_o can_v perform_v the_o spiritual_a and_o celestial_a grace_n of_o god_n to_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o visible_a sign_n but_o only_o god_n sacraâânt_n how_o can_v water_v regenerate_v the_o soul_n if_o the_o word_n be_v not_o god_n how_o can_v bread_n and_o wine_n nourish_v to_o life_n everlasting_a unless_o the_o same_o god_n have_v likewise_o speak_v the_o word_n we_o must_v in_o all_o sacrament_n be_v full_o persuade_v of_o christ_n infallible_a truth_n &_o alsufficient_a power_n before_o we_o can_v either_o believe_v or_o enjoy_v the_o promise_n if_o his_o word_n may_v lack_v truth_n or_o want_v power_n than_o shall_v our_o faith_n vanish_v &_o these_o outward_a element_n perish_v without_o profit_v we_o but_o with_o he_o be_v no_o change_v neither_o can_v any_o thing_n defeat_v his_o will_n &_o therefore_o when_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o look_v not_o on_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v corruptible_a but_o on_o the_o perfection_n of_o his_o heavenly_a word_n which_o be_v puissant_a &_o predominant_a over_o all_o thing_n what_o do_v this_o help_n your_o real_a &_o corporal_a conversion_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n what_o make_v this_o for_o transubstantiation_n god_n be_v wonderful_a in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o his_o sacrament_n not_o by_o cast_v away_o substance_n transubstantiation_n and_o leave_v accidence_n but_o by_o work_v that_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o mighty_a power_n of_o his_o spirit_n above_o nature_n which_o the_o visible_a sign_n import_v to_o our_o sense_n and_o this_o be_v more_o marvellous_a in_o any_o wise_a man_n eye_n than_o your_o accidental_a show_n without_o a_o subject_n phi._n god_n be_v marvellous_a in_o all_o his_o work_n but_o in_o this_o more_o than_o in_o any_o other_o because_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v change_v change_v where_o the_o quality_n be_v not_o theo._n that_o change_n you_o dream_v of_o but_o who_o avouch_v it_o beside_o yourselves_o or_o what_o ancient_a father_n ever_o mention_v any_o such_o phi._n they_o all_o confess_v the_o change_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o theo._n you_o be_v so_o deep_a in_o your_o empty_a show_n that_o we_o take_v your_o all_o to_o be_v as_o much_o as_o none_o phi._n think_v you_o as_o you_o listen_v we_o know_v what_o we_o have_v theo._n if_o your_o store_n be_v so_o great_a why_o make_v you_o such_o curtsy_n to_o name_v we_o one_o phi._n you_o will_v quarrel_v with_o he_o when_o i_o bring_v he_o theo._n yourself_o mistrust_v he_o before_o you_o offer_v he_o phi._n i_o mistrust_v your_o carp_n not_o his_o writing_n theo._n if_o my_o answer_n be_v not_o sound_a wherefore_o serve_v you_o but_o to_o refute_v it_o phi._n well_o then_o corpus_fw-la eusebius_n emissenus_fw-la have_v a_o evident_a testimony_n for_o this_o matter_n recedat_fw-la omne_fw-la infidelitatis_fw-la ambiguum_fw-la quandoquidem_fw-la qui_fw-la author_n est_fw-la muneris_fw-la ipse_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la testis_fw-la veritatis_fw-la nam_fw-la invisibilis_fw-la sacerdos_fw-la visibiles_fw-la creaturas_fw-la in_o substantiam_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la svi_fw-la verbo_fw-la secreta_fw-la potestate_fw-la convertit_fw-la ita_fw-la dicens_fw-la accipite_fw-la &_o comedite_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la et_fw-fr sanctificatione_n repetita_fw-la accipite_fw-la &_o bibite_fw-la ait_fw-la hic_fw-la est_fw-la sanguis_fw-la meus_fw-la name_n ergo_fw-la sicut_fw-la ad_fw-la nutum_fw-la praecipientis_fw-la domini_fw-la repent_v &_o ex_fw-la nihilo_fw-la substiterunt_fw-la excelsa_fw-la caelorum_fw-la profunda_fw-la fluctuum_fw-la vasta_fw-la terrarum_fw-la ita_fw-la pari_fw-la potestate_fw-la in_o spiritualibus_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la ubi_fw-la praecipit_fw-la virtus_fw-la seruit_fw-la effectus_fw-la let_v all_o doubt_n of_o infidelity_n
friar_n under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a and_o learnââ_n father_n phi._n whatsoever_o he_o be_v ancient_a he_o be_v and_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n without_o all_o question_n which_o we_o do_v theo._n his_o antiquity_n you_o know_v not_o and_o his_o doctrine_n you_o understand_v not_o for_o though_o we_o like_v not_o your_o shuffle_n and_o exchange_v of_o name_n with_o the_o father_n and_o broach_v your_o fancy_n and_o heresy_n under_o their_o ãâ¦ã_o this_o whâle_a sermon_n we_o can_v and_o do_v admit_v as_o have_v nothing_o either_o dissident_n from_o true_a antiquity_n or_o repugnant_a to_o that_o which_o we_o teach_v phi._n will_v you_o say_v that_o doctrine_n of_o he_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o you_o theo._n why_o shall_v i_o not_o phi._n will_v you_o confess_v that_o the_o visible_a creature_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n by_o the_o secret_a power_n of_o his_o word_n change_n the._n his_o word_n i_o say_v make_v nothing_o for_o your_o abolish_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o leave_v the_o accident_n phi._n he_o say_v the_o visible_a creature_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n theo._n but_o he_o say_v not_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o visible_a creature_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n phi._n substance_n how_o can_v one_o creature_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o other_o but_o by_o lose_v his_o former_a substance_n theo._n in_o natural_a mutation_n it_o be_v so_o but_o this_o be_v nothing_o less_o than_o natural_a phi._n it_o be_v divine_a and_o supernatural_a theo._n and_o so_o be_v it_o likewise_o spiritual_a and_o mystical_a not_o real_o change_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n but_o cast_v grace_n unto_o nature_n phi._n nay_o he_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o creature_n be_v change_v theo._n where_o say_v he_o so_o phi._n he_o say_v which_o be_v all_o one_o that_o the_o visible_a creature_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n the._n but_o by_o no_o material_a nor_o corporal_a change_n phi._n how_o can_v the_o creature_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n substance_n but_o by_o a_o material_a &_o corporal_a change_n theo._n that_o be_v your_o error_n not_o your_o author_n addition_n phi._n it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v otherwise_o theo._n what_o if_o your_o own_o writer_n in_o this_o very_a case_n and_o place_n reprove_v you_o for_o a_o liar_n phi._n that_o much_o earthly_a creature_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o christ_n substance_n without_o a_o material_a and_o substantial_a change_n never_o say_v it_o it_o can_v be_v theo._n will_v you_o look_v but_o two_o line_n far_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v this_o great_a impossibility_n avouch_v by_o your_o own_o author_n quomodo_fw-la tibi_fw-la nowm_fw-la &_o impossibile_fw-it esse_fw-la non_fw-la debeat_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o christi_fw-la substantiam_fw-la terrena_fw-la &_o mortalia_fw-la convertuntur_fw-la te_fw-la ipsum_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la es_fw-la regeneratus_fw-la interroga_fw-la corpus_fw-la how_o this_o to_o thou_o shall_v neither_o be_v strange_a nor_o impossible_a that_o mortal_a &_o earthly_a creature_n be_v turn_v into_o christ_n substance_n ask_v thyself_o which_o art_n regenerate_v in_o christ._n substance_n sometime_o since_o thou_o be_v far_o from_o life_n exclude_v from_o mercy_n and_o banish_v from_o the_o path_n of_o salvation_n as_o be_v inward_o dead_a &_o sudden_o initiate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n &_o renew_v by_o the_o healthful_a mystery_n thou_o do_v pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n not_o by_o sight_n but_o by_o faith_n &_o thou_o which_o be_v the_o son_n of_o perdition_n obtain_v to_o be_v make_v the_o adopt_a child_n of_o god_n by_o a_o secret_a purity_n remain_v in_o the_o same_o visible_a measure_n thou_o grewe_v invisible_o without_o increase_n of_o quantity_n &_o be_v thyself_o &_o the_o very_a same_o confession_n that_o thou_o be_v before_o in_o process_n of_o faith_n thou_o become_v another_o in_o the_o outward_a man_n nothing_o be_v add_v &_o all_o change_v in_o the_o inward_a take_v this_o spiritual_a &_o immaterial_a change_n of_o every_o christian_n in_o baptism_n to_o show_v in_o what_o sort_n &_o how_o he_o mean_v that_o mortal_a &_o earthly_a creature_n by_o consââration_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v far_o from_o a_o corporal_a &_o substantial_a change_n such_o as_o you_o will_v urge_v by_o pretence_n of_o his_o word_n in_o yâ_z creature_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n phi._n this_o construction_n can_v stand_v substance_n that_o creature_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o other_o substance_n and_o yet_o remain_v in_o their_o own_o and_o former_a substance_n for_o then_o how_o be_v they_o change_v theo._n in_o your_o physical_a conceit_n it_o can_v but_o if_o you_o consult_v those_o father_n that_o be_v the_o first_o introducer_n of_o this_o speech_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o may_v gelasius_n join_v they_o both_o together_o in_o one_o sentence_n the_o one_o to_o expound_v the_o other_o eutich_n in_o divinam_fw-la transeunt_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la perficiente_fw-la substantiam_fw-la permanent_a tamen_fw-la in_o suae_fw-la proprietate_fw-la naturae_fw-la the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n pass_v into_o a_o divine_a substance_n by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o remain_v in_o the_o propriety_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o lest_o you_o shall_v cavil_v that_o they_o keep_v their_o former_a quality_n and_o not_o their_o substance_n in_o express_a word_n he_o say_v &_o tamen_fw-la non_fw-la desinit_fw-la esse_fw-la substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la and_o yet_o for_o all_o they_o pass_v into_o a_o divine_a substance_n the_o former_a substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o nor_o be_v abolish_v no_o more_o than_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v change_v from_o his_o former_a substance_n when_o after_o his_o ascension_n it_o be_v replenish_v with_o divine_a glory_n phi._n you_o frustrate_v the_o say_n of_o the_o father_n with_o your_o comparison_n theo._n they_o be_v their_o own_o comparison_n &_o principal_a intention_n in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o speak_v these_o word_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v rack_v the_o one_o to_o your_o length_n concuârents_n and_o not_o respect_v the_o other_o you_o may_v soon_o force_v some_o phrase_n to_o feed_v your_o fancy_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o safe_a way_n for_o you_o to_o walk_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o right_a course_n for_o you_o to_o take_v to_o come_v by_o their_o meaning_n you_o must_v look_v how_o far_o they_o press_v their_o own_o word_n &_o what_o they_o will_v conclude_v not_o what_o you_o lâst_v to_o conceive_v or_o imagine_v of_o their_o speech_n howsoever_o they_o mention_v a_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o divine_a essence_n &_o substance_n no_o father_n avouch_v any_o corporal_a material_a or_o substantial_a change_n of_o the_o element_n into_o the_o body_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o spiritual_a mystical_a and_o effectual_a annex_v &_o unite_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o either_o paât_o retain_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o former_a and_o proper_a nature_n and_o substance_n this_o be_v apparent_a by_o those_o very_a place_n &_o sentence_n which_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v a_o change_n the_o father_n teach_v not_o the_o one_o without_o the_o other_o as_o you_o see_v for_o example_n in_o gelasius_n and_o your_o eusebius_n and_o so_o in_o cyprian_a domini_fw-la panis_n iste_fw-la quem_fw-la dominus_fw-la discipulis_fw-la porrigebat_fw-la non_fw-la effigy_n sed_fw-la natura_fw-la mutatus_fw-la omnipotentia_fw-la verbi_fw-la factus_fw-la est_fw-la caro_fw-la this_o bread_n which_o the_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n change_v not_o in_o shape_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o lest_o you_o shall_v dream_v of_o any_o material_a or_o substantial_a change_n as_o your_o manner_n be_v the_o very_a next_o word_n in_o the_o same_o sentence_n be_v ibidem_fw-la et_fw-la sicut_fw-la in_o persona_fw-la christi_fw-la humanitas_fw-la videbatur_fw-la &_o latebat_fw-la divinitas_fw-la ita_fw-la sacramento_fw-la visibili_fw-la ineffabiliter_fw-la divina_fw-la se_fw-la infundit_fw-la essentia_fw-la and_o as_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n christ._n his_o humanity_n be_v see_v his_o divinity_n be_v hide_v and_o secret_a so_o in_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n the_o divine_a essence_n do_v infuse_v itself_o after_o a_o unspeakable_a manner_n phi._n do_v you_o bring_v this_o place_n for_o we_o or_o against_o we_o you_o can_v not_o have_v light_v on_o a_o fit_a for_o our_o purpose_n if_o you_o shall_v have_v seek_v these_o seven_o year_n the._n i_o know_v it_o be_v one_o of_o your_o best_a authority_n as_o you_o make_v your_o account_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o way_n prejudicial_a to_o we_o if_o
divide_v from_o our_o world_n when_o he_o come_v to_o any_o forwardness_n in_o religion_n seek_v for_o this_o place_v which_o he_o know_v only_o by_o hearsay_n and_o by_o relation_n of_o the_o scripture_n what_o shall_v i_o speak_v of_o the_o armenian_n persian_n indian_n ethiopian_n of_o egypt_n that_o be_v hard_a by_o and_o have_v such_o store_n of_o monk_n or_o of_o pontus_n cappadocia_n caelesyria_n mesopotamia_n and_o all_o the_o swarm_n of_o the_o east_n they_o have_v diverse_a language_n but_o one_o religion_n there_o be_v here_o almost_o as_o many_o quire_n that_o sing_v the_o psalm_n in_o their_o several_a tongue_n as_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o nation_n saint_n augustine_n urge_v this_o which_o you_o defend_v that_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v praise_v in_o a_o barbarous_a tongue_n as_o a_o manifest_a inconvenience_n against_o they_o that_o will_v not_o have_v the_o word_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d use_v to_o express_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o trinity_n tongue_n if_o one_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v not_o be_v utter_v in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v it_o fit_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v praise_v in_o a_o barbarous_a tongue_n but_o if_o the_o late_a be_v use_v why_o not_o the_o former_a and_o that_o the_o late_a be_v use_v he_o show_v in_o these_o word_n tongue_n una_fw-la rogatur_fw-la ut_fw-la misereatur_fw-la à _fw-la cunctis_fw-la latinis_fw-la &_o barbaris_fw-la unius_fw-la dei_fw-la natura_fw-la ut_fw-la à _fw-la laudibus_fw-la dei_fw-la unius_fw-la nec_fw-la ipsa_fw-la lingua_fw-la barbara_fw-la sit_fw-la ut_fw-la latinis_fw-la aliena_fw-la the_o one_o nature_n of_o one_o god_n be_v pray_v unto_o by_o all_o the_o latin_n and_o barbarian_n to_o be_v merciful_a to_o they_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o very_a barbarous_a tongue_n be_v not_o exclude_v from_o the_o praise_n of_o one_o god_n as_o belong_v to_o the_o latin_n more_o than_o to_o the_o barbarian_n in_o latin_a we_o say_v domine_fw-la miserere_fw-la then_o belike_o this_o mercy_n ought_v to_o be_v ask_v of_o that_o one_o god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o only_o in_o the_o hebrew_n or_o greek_a tongue_n or_o at_o least_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n and_o not_o in_o any_o barbarous_a tongue_n marry_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a not_o only_o for_o the_o barbarian_n in_o their_o language_n but_o for_o the_o roman_n conquer_v and_o compel_v by_o the_o goaâhes_n to_o learn_v their_o speech_n to_o say_v sihoraarmem_fw-la tongue_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o lord_n have_v mercy_n on_o we_o why_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o father_n that_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o land_n of_o grecia_n to_o call_v one_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o their_o own_o tongue_n homoousion_n thus_o much_o s._n augustine_n confess_v that_o god_n be_v and_o may_v be_v praise_v and_o pray_v unto_o in_o a_o barbarous_a language_n as_o well_o as_o in_o hebrew_n greek_a or_o latin_a and_o repeat_v a_o piece_n of_o the_o church_n service_n in_o the_o gothian_a tongue_n which_o not_o only_a themselves_o use_v but_o the_o roman_n be_v force_v to_o receive_v in_o steed_n of_o domine_fw-la miserere_fw-la when_o their_o city_n be_v take_v and_o surprise_v by_o the_o goth_n for_o kyerie_a eleison_fw-la time_n which_o gregory_n two_o hundred_o year_n after_o borrow_v of_o the_o grecian_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o in_o saint_n augustine_n time_n use_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o very_a savage_a people_n that_o offer_v unto_o devil_n when_o they_o be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n be_v not_o deny_v to_o have_v their_o psalm_n and_o prayer_n in_o their_o rude_a and_o unpolished_a tongue_n as_o s._n hierom_n report_v of_o the_o bessian_o and_o other_o nepotian_n the_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n the_o tongue_n and_o letter_n of_o all_o nation_n do_v sound_a i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o hebrew_n greek_n and_o latin_n which_o nation_n the_o lord_n do_v dedicate_v in_o the_o title_n of_o his_o cross_n that_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o have_v his_o be_v after_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o body_n the_o indian_a the_o persian_a the_o goth_n the_o egyptian_a can_v large_o discourse_v the_o wild_a besâians_n and_o they_o which_o go_v clothe_v in_o beast_n skin_n for_o lack_n of_o other_o apparel_n sacrifice_v man_n to_o the_o ghost_n depart_v tongue_n stridorem_fw-la suum_fw-la in_o dulce_fw-la crucis_fw-la fregerunt_fw-la melos_fw-la have_v turn_v their_o barbarous_a and_o fearful_a noise_n into_o the_o sweet_a melody_n of_o the_o cross_n other_o particular_n may_v be_v bring_v but_o the_o report_n of_o saint_n basill_n shall_v suffice_v for_o the_o general_a order_n of_o pray_v and_o sing_v observe_v as_o he_o say_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o those_o nation_n and_o country_n where_o the_o common_a people_n can_v no_o latin_a greek_a nor_o hebrew_n but_o of_o force_n be_v drive_v to_o use_v their_o natural_a language_n though_o it_o be_v barbarous_a before_o they_o can_v either_o utter_v their_o own_o mind_n or_o understand_v what_o other_o say_v latin_a the_o people_n with_o we_o rise_v in_o the_o night_n go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o prayer_n and_o with_o continual_a tear_n make_v their_o confession_n to_o god_n and_o at_o length_n rise_v from_o prayer_n they_o set_v themselves_o in_o order_n to_o sing_v psalm_n where_o be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n they_o sing_v by_o course_n each_o side_n after_o other_o and_o so_o with_o variety_n of_o psalm_n and_o prayer_n intersert_v they_o spend_v the_o night_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o day_n break_v all_o of_o they_o in_o common_a as_o it_o be_v with_o one_o mouth_n and_o one_o heart_n offer_v to_o the_o lord_n a_o psalm_n of_o confession_n every_o one_o of_o they_o make_v the_o word_n of_o repentance_n proper_a to_o himself_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o order_n then_o if_o you_o refuse_v we_o you_o must_v also_o refuse_v the_o egyptian_n the_o people_n of_o either_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d lybia_n tongue_n thebais_n palestine_n the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d arabian_n phoenicyan_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d syrian_n the_o armenian_n babylonian_n &_o other_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d borderer_n on_o euphrates_n &_o general_o all_o with_o who_o vigil_n prayer_n and_o common_a psalmody_n be_v esteem_v and_o that_o this_o order_n of_o sing_v the_o psalm_n be_v general_a throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o people_n jew_n grecian_n roman_n or_o barbarian_n the_o word_n immediate_o before_o do_v witness_n to_o that_o accusation_n wherein_o we_o be_v blame_v for_o the_o psalmody_n i_o have_v this_o to_o answer_v that_o the_o manner_n and_o fashion_n of_o sing_v psalm_n which_o be_v here_o with_o we_o be_v agreeable_a and_o consonant_a to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o these_o word_n be_v true_a than_o not_o only_o the_o egyptian_n south_n indian_n arabian_n and_o syrian_n who_o this_o father_n name_v but_o the_o persian_n east_n indian_n armenian_n iberian_o scythian_n and_o all_o other_o nation_n have_v the_o same_o order_n of_o pray_v and_o sing_v in_o their_o church_n by_o the_o mouth_n and_o voice_n of_o the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a people_n and_o consequent_o either_o all_o the_o christian_a man_n woman_n and_o child_n in_o the_o world_n can_v speak_v and_o understand_v one_o of_o the_o three_o learned_a tongue_n which_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a false_a and_o impious_a imagination_n or_o else_o each_o nation_n have_v their_o public_a prayer_n and_o psalm_n in_o their_o several_a and_o barbarous_a tongue_n which_o be_v the_o point_n you_o will_v needs_o have_v prove_v before_o we_o pass_v any_o far_o phi._n that_o be_v then_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n but_o since_o this_o which_o we_o use_v 14._o have_v be_v think_v by_o the_o wise_a and_o godly_a to_o be_v most_o expedient_a and_o it_o be_v certain_o see_v to_o be_v nothing_o repugnant_a to_o s._n paul_n theo._n you_o lack_v good_a neighbour_n to_o help_v you_o that_o you_o be_v force_v so_o shameful_o with_o your_o own_o mouth_n in_o godliness_n and_o wisdom_n to_o prefer_v yourselves_o before_o the_o learned_a and_o catholic_a father_n of_o all_o antiquity_n church_n we_o show_v you_o the_o ancient_a and_o universal_a custom_n of_o christ_n church_n proportion_v her_o prayer_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o direct_v they_o whole_o to_o edify_v the_o vulgar_a and_o simple_a people_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v by_o plain_a precept_n from_o god_n himself_o as_o they_o conceive_v the_o apostle_n speech_n you_o tell_v we_o that_o you_o have_v not_o only_o change_v that_o order_n of_o your_o own_o authority_n but_o that_o you_o have_v confer_v with_o some_o godly_a and_o wise_a
ea_fw-la demum_fw-la est_fw-la miserabilis_fw-la animae_fw-la seruitus_fw-la signa_fw-la pro_fw-la rebus_fw-la accipere_fw-la nec_fw-la supra_fw-la creaturam_fw-la corpoream_fw-la oculum_fw-la mentis_fw-la ad_fw-la âauriendum_fw-la aeternum_fw-la lumen_fw-la levare_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la that_o be_v a_o miserable_a bondage_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o take_v the_o sign_n or_o sacrament_n as_o you_o do_v for_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o not_o to_o be_v able_a to_o lift_v up_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o mind_n above_o the_o corporal_a creature_n to_o perceive_v the_o eternal_a brightness_n of_o adoration_n he_o say_v rectè_fw-la scribitur_fw-la hominem_fw-la ab_fw-la angelo_fw-la prohibitum_fw-la ne_fw-la se_fw-la aedoraret_fw-la sed_fw-la unum_fw-la deum_fw-la sub_fw-la quo_fw-la esset_fw-la ei_fw-la &_o ille_fw-la conseruus_fw-la it_o be_v very_o well_o record_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o a_o man_n be_v prohibit_v by_o a_o angel_n to_o adore_v he_o but_o only_o god_n under_o who_o he_o himself_o be_v a_o fellow_n servant_n unto_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v ibidem_fw-la ecce_fw-la unum_fw-la deum_fw-la colo_fw-la behold_v i_o worship_v &_o adore_v none_o but_o god_n and_o thence_o he_o derive_v the_o name_n of_o religion_n ibidem_fw-la quod_fw-la ei_fw-la uni_fw-la religet_fw-la animas_fw-la nostras_fw-la because_o it_o rely_v our_o soul_n on_o he_o alone_o so_o that_o veneration_n you_o may_v give_v to_o sacrament_n adoration_n you_o may_v not_o and_o yet_o you_o fine_o convey_v the_o one_o into_o s._n augustine_n text_n joint_o with_o the_o other_o as_o if_o they_o be_v both_o find_v in_o his_o word_n which_o they_o be_v not_o phi._n he_o say_v singular_a veneration_n theo._n you_o say_v so_o but_o he_o say_v not_o so_o his_o word_n be_v veneratione_n singulariter_fw-la debita_fw-la with_o that_o veneration_n which_o be_v due_a only_a or_o singular_o to_o this_o sacrament_n phi._n and_o what_o be_v that_o but_o adoration_n sacrament_n theo._n if_o you_o may_v be_v judge_n it_o shall_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o s._n augustine_n say_v not_o to_o be_v contemn_v be_v the_o veneration_n due_a unto_o it_o contemptum_fw-la solum_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la cibus_fw-la ille_fw-la that_o meat_n mislike_v only_o contempt_n that_o be_v either_o to_o be_v daily_o receive_v without_o regard_n or_o to_o be_v still_o refuse_v upon_o pretence_n of_o unworthynesse_n and_o that_o be_v the_o case_n of_o which_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v your_o cunning_n serve_v you_o in_o steed_n of_o examine_v themselves_o before_o they_o receive_v it_o which_o s._n augustine_n mean_v to_o set_v the_o people_n not_o at_o all_o to_o receive_v it_o but_o to_o fall_v down_o and_o adore_v it_o with_o divine_a honour_n in_o christ_n place_n which_o be_v as_o wilful_a a_o contempt_n of_o his_o ordinance_n and_o as_o shameful_a a_o abuse_n of_o his_o sacrament_n as_o can_v be_v commit_v phi._n the_o same_o father_n in_o a_o other_o place_n say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 98._o no_o man_n eat_v it_o before_o he_o adore_v it_o theo._n be_v you_o not_o desperate_o set_v thât_o to_o defile_v yourselves_o with_o open_a idolatry_n will_v force_v the_o father_n to_o fit_v your_o âumours_n against_o their_o own_o speech_n s._n augustine_n say_v of_o christ_n flesh_n which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n nemo_fw-la illam_fw-la carnem_fw-la manducat_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la adoraverit_fw-la no_o man_n eat_v that_o flesh_n of_o christ_n unless_o he_o first_o adore_v it_o you_o make_v no_o more_o bone_n at_o the_o matter_n but_o strike_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o saint_n augustine_n word_n host_n and_o refer_v adoration_n to_o the_o corporal_a creature_n which_o the_o priest_n hold_v in_o his_o finger_n be_v not_o this_o trow_v you_o sound_o deal_v in_o the_o great_a mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o imminent_a peril_n of_o your_o damnation_n purposely_o to_o shut_v your_o eye_n lest_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o truth_n or_o agnise_v the_o rashness_n of_o your_o new_a find_a adoration_n what_o have_v saint_n augustine_n word_n to_o do_v with_o your_o adore_v the_o mystical_a sign_n when_o he_o direct_o name_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v both_o eat_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o adore_v in_o the_o spirit_n yea_o the_o very_a eat_n of_o it_o be_v the_o adore_v of_o it_o since_o it_o be_v not_o eat_v but_o by_o believe_v it_o hope_v and_o rejoice_v in_o it_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a branch_n of_o god_n divine_a honour_n phi._n as_o though_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o real_o close_v in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o corporal_o eat_v with_o the_o mouth_n of_o man_n theo._n one_o error_n must_v needs_o draw_v on_o a_o other_o presence_n or_o rather_o your_o real_a and_o carnal_a presence_n be_v the_o groundwork_n of_o all_o your_o error_n and_o abuse_n in_o the_o mass_n phi._n the_o denial_n of_o it_o be_v the_o high_a way_n to_o all_o your_o heresy_n and_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o our_o part_n till_o you_o leave_v that_o we_o look_v for_o no_o better_a at_o your_o hand_n theo._n look_v to_o your_o own_o foot_n lest_o while_o you_o watch_v our_o hand_n your_o leg_n slip_v into_o the_o pit_n of_o destruction_n phi._n we_o be_v pass_v all_o fear_n of_o that_o theo._n and_o so_o be_v those_o that_o be_v past_o all_o recovery_n but_o yet_o for_o the_o save_n of_o other_o man_n soul_n if_o not_o of_o you_o we_o will_v first_o weigh_v the_o proof_n of_o your_o adoration_n &_o after_o not_o stick_v to_o survey_v the_o part_n of_o your_o transubstantiation_n go_v on_o therefore_o with_o your_o former_a authority_n phi._n s._n ambrose_n say_v 12._o we_o adore_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o mystery_n theo._n uery_o and_o themselves_o so_o do_v we_o but_o the_o mystery_n and_o sacrament_n themselves_o we_o do_v not_o adore_v neither_o do_v saint_n ambrose_n ever_o teach_v any_o man_n to_o adore_v they_o phi._n i_o see_v you_o mistake_v us._n you_o think_v we_o adore_v the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n where_o in_o deed_n we_o do_v not_o but_o rather_o we_o adore_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o lyve_a god_n and_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n in_o those_o mystery_n as_o saint_n ambrose_n say_v or_o as_o we_o speak_v more_o usual_o under_o those_o mystery_n form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n theo._n i_o mistake_v you_o not_o i_o know_v you_o adore_v that_o which_o be_v local_o and_o real_o enclose_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o your_o host_n and_o chalice_n suppose_v it_o in_o matter_n and_o substance_n to_o be_v the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n apparel_v with_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o whiteness_n roundness_n sweetness_n moistness_n and_o such_o like_a propriety_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n but_o your_o foundation_n we_o say_v be_v false_a and_o therefore_o your_o building_n must_v needs_o be_v ruinous_a christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o mystery_n not_o by_o the_o material_a substance_n of_o his_o body_n close_v within_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n mystery_n but_o by_o a_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a virtue_n and_o efficience_n not_o mix_v ãâ¦ã_o but_o enter_v the_o hârtâ_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o nourish_v they_o with_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n to_o eternal_a life_n the_o element_n abide_v in_o their_o proper_a and_o former_a essence_n and_o substance_n and_o therefore_o when_o you_o adore_v they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v christ_n in_o nature_n and_o substance_n which_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v not_o you_o worship_v not_o christ_n creature_n but_o give_v his_o honour_n to_o creature_n and_o in_o steed_n of_o wash_v your_o sin_n away_o by_o the_o death_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n you_o kindle_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o you_o by_o mistake_n his_o son_n and_o adore_v the_o element_n with_o divine_a honour_n in_o lieu_n of_o christ._n phi._n tush_o we_o regard_v not_o these_o word_n of_o you_o we_o have_v assurance_n from_o christ_n himself_o that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o so_o long_o we_o pass_v not_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o you_o can_v allege_v or_o object_v against_o us._n idolatry_n theophil_n but_o if_o you_o misconstrue_v his_o word_n to_o make_v a_o dead_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n to_o be_v the_o second_o person_n in_o trinity_n and_o give_v it_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o glorious_a and_o immortal_a god_n what_o assurance_n can_v you_o have_v that_o christ_n jesus_n will_v put_v up_o this_o reproach_n at_o your_o hand_n and_o not_o avenge_v himself_o on_o you_o as_o on_o proud_a idolater_n phi._n be_v you_o well_o in_o your_o wit_n to_o urge_v we_o so_o often_o with_o open_a idolatry_n where_o as_o we_o show_v you_o so_o plain_a proof_n of_o our_o defence_n theo._n plain_o quoth_v you_o they_o in_o good_a faith_n they_o be_v such_o as_o no_o mean_a scholar_n will_v stumble_v at_o christ_n you_o prove_v
take_v a_o stock_n for_o their_o father_n and_o a_o stone_n for_o their_o maker_n they_o think_v they_o worship_v god_n and_o not_o the_o image_n philand_n but_o we_o be_v sure_a that_o christ_n make_v this_o to_o be_v himself_o when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n theo._n he_o say_v i_o be_o the_o door_n i_o be_o the_o vine_n and_o yet_o neither_o door_n nor_o vine_n be_v real_o and_o personal_o the_o son_n of_o god_n philand_n he_o speak_v those_o thing_n in_o parable_n and_o by_o way_n of_o resemblance_n this_o he_o speak_v in_o plain_a truth_n without_o all_o figure_n earth_n and_o therefore_o this_o must_v be_v substantial_o turn_v into_o christ_n though_o that_o be_v not_o theoph._n you_o make_v your_o real_a and_o corporal_a presence_n a_o refuge_n for_o your_o erroneous_a and_o absurd_a assertion_n but_o if_o that_o be_v false_a as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n then_o be_v you_o plunge_v over_o head_n and_o ear_n in_o the_o mire_n and_o sink_v of_o sin_n and_o heresy_n phi._n if_o god_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n we_o shall_v never_o come_v there_o but_o if_o he_o be_v we_o can_v not_o miss_v our_o way_n for_o have_v the_o whole_a church_n think_v you_o lyen_fw-we in_o sin_n and_o heresy_n till_o your_o new_a doctrine_n come_v late_o from_o geneva_n theo._n in_o deed_n i_o think_v this_o reason_n be_v even_o as_o good_a as_o the_o most_o of_o those_o which_o your_o friend_n have_v fresh_o send_v we_o from_o rheims_n but_o abuse_v not_o yourselves_o with_o such_o stately_a folly_n god_n may_v well_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o be_v no_o doubt_n and_o yet_o you_o never_o come_v there_o for_o refuse_v the_o right_a way_n thither_o philand_n religion_n we_o go_v the_o same_o way_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n since_o christ_n time_n go_v before_o us._n theoph._n this_o pride_n so_o bewitch_v you_o that_o you_o can_v not_o see_v how_o far_o you_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v in_o ancient_a and_o uncorrupted_a age_n philand_n as_o though_o we_o do_v not_o join_v with_o they_o in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o point_n of_o religion_n theoph._n you_o join_v with_o they_o as_o dark-night_n do_v with_o daylight_n philand_n have_v we_o not_o their_o full_a consent_n for_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o impugn_v theoph._n as_o namely_o for_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n where_o you_o pretend_v the_o whole_a church_n and_o show_v not_o one_o man_n that_o ever_o teach_v of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v adore_v philand_n be_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n teach_v to_o say_v unto_o it_o and_o cry_v upon_o it_o domine_fw-la non_fw-la suum_fw-la dignus_fw-la lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a theo._n prove_v that_o this_o or_o any_o other_o invocation_n or_o adoration_n be_v use_v to_o it_o as_o you_o say_v and_o you_o shall_v go_v free_a for_o all_o dignus_fw-la phi._n origen_n ho._n 5._o in_o diverse_a when_o thou_o eat_v say_v he_o and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n he_o enter_v under_o thy_o roof_n thou_o also_o therefore_o humble_v thyself_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a so_o say_v sacrament_n s._n chrysostome_n in_o his_o mass_n theoph._n this_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o say_v but_o to_o what_o be_v they_o teach_v to_o say_v it_o philand_n to_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n who_o say_v so_o beside_o you_o phi._n origen_n and_o saint_n chrysostome_n theoph._n perhaps_o they_o teach_v the_o people_n that_o kind_n of_o prayer_n when_o they_o do_v communicate_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n but_o do_v they_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o say_v so_o to_o the_o sacrament_n philand_n even_o thus_o to_o cry_v upon_o it_o and_o thus_o to_o say_v unto_o it_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a theo._n otherwise_o we_o will_v glad_o hear_v that_o of_o their_o own_o mouth_n we_o trust_v not_o you_o philand_n look_v the_o place_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v as_o we_o say_v theo._n we_o have_v view_v the_o place_n and_o find_v you_o to_o be_v liar_n phi._n be_v not_o those_o origen_n word_v which_o we_o rehearse_v theo._n origen_n have_v the_o word_n which_o you_o cite_v but_o he_o teach_v not_o the_o people_n to_o direct_v they_o to_o the_o sacrament_n philand_n to_o who_o then_o theoph._n to_o who_o but_o to_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n phi._n and_o he_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n their_o assertion_n not_o your_o addition_n be_v the_o thing_n we_o ask_v for_o that_o these_o and_o all_o other_o part_n of_o divine_a honour_n be_v due_a to_o christ_n no_o christian_n may_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v direct_v and_o apply_v to_o the_o host_n that_o be_v your_o blasphemy_n no_o father_n âuer_o teach_v it_o origen_n discuss_v the_o centurion_n fact_n and_o faith_n tell_v his_o audience_n that_o christ_n enter_v under_o the_o roof_n of_o all_o believer_n two_o way_n diverse_a first_o by_o his_o minister_n then_o by_o his_o mystery_n intrat_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la dominus_fw-la sub_fw-la tectum_fw-la credentium_fw-la duplici_fw-la figura_fw-la vel_fw-la more_fw-it the_o lord_n even_o at_o this_o day_n enter_v the_o roof_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v after_o two_o sort_n or_o manner_n for_o when_o holy_a and_o acceptable_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o god_n enter_v our_o howsen_fw-mi even_o then_o and_o there_o the_o lord_n enter_v by_o they_o and_o be_v thou_o so_o affect_v as_o if_o thou_o receive_v the_o lord_n himself_o an_o other_o way_n be_v when_o thou_o receive_v that_o holy_a meat_n man_n and_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o then_o the_o lord_n enter_v thy_o roof_n also_o thou_o therefore_o humble_v thyself_o imitate_v the_o centurion_n and_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v come_v under_o my_o roof_n this_o must_v be_v say_v as_o well_o when_o the_o preacher_n enter_v our_o house_n as_o when_o we_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o origen_n that_o christ_n come_v under_o our_o roof_n in_o both_o these_o case_n prove_v and_o we_o be_v not_o worthy_a in_o either_o of_o they_o or_o in_o any_o other_o case_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v come_v under_o our_o roof_n as_o than_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o deify_v the_o preacher_n because_o christ_n voutsafe_v to_o come_v in_o he_o and_o with_o he_o or_o to_o salute_v he_o with_o the_o divine_a honour_n due_a to_o christ_n and_o to_o say_v to_o a_o mortal_a man_n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a so_o can_v it_o be_v no_o less_o impiety_n to_o say_v to_o the_o dead_a creature_n in_o which_o or_o with_o which_o we_o receive_v christ_n from_o his_o table_n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a phi._n do_v you_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v none_o otherwise_o in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o he_o be_v in_o a_o mortal_a man_n theo._n he_o be_v more_o true_o real_o and_o natural_o in_o those_o man_n that_o be_v his_o member_n than_o he_o be_v in_o the_o element_n that_o be_v use_v at_o his_o table_n phi._n o_o shameful_a heresy_n be_v any_o mortal_a man_n transsubstantiate_v into_o christ_n as_o the_o element_n be_v by_o power_n of_o consecration_n theo._n that_o which_o i_o say_v be_v most_o true_a man_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n bread_n be_v not_o christ_n abide_v in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o he_o in_o the_o bread_n he_o do_v not_o he_o will_v raise_v they_o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o bread_n he_o will_v not_o they_o shall_v reign_v with_o he_o for_o ever_o the_o bread_n shall_v not_o and_o therefore_o take_v back_o your_o shameful_a error_n of_o transsubstantiate_v the_o element_n into_o christ_n since_o he_o be_v more_o real_o in_o we_o than_o in_o the_o pix_n or_o the_o chalice_n and_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o substantial_o convert_v into_o he_o phi._n i_o will_v never_o believe_v this_o while_o i_o have_v a_o day_n to_o live_v theo._n neither_o do_v i_o mean_v in_o this_o place_n to_o enter_v that_o discourse_n yet_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o it_o i_o send_v you_o to_o chrysostome_n cyrill_n and_o hilary_n who_o will_v teach_v you_o so_o much_o in_o plain_a word_n that_o christ_n be_v in_o we_o real_o natural_o corporal_o carnal_o substantial_o which_o of_o the_o sacrament_n you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v no_o part_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n as_o we_o be_v and_o therefore_o we_o be_v knit_v unto_o he_o even_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o he_o and_o our_o nature_n flesh_n and_o substance_n as_o member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n to_o their_o head_n the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o but_o only_o annex_v as_o a_o sign_n to_o the_o heavenly_a grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o christ_n mighty_o present_a and_o true_o enter_v the_o soul_n of_o every_o man_n that_o
here_o on_o earth_n though_o after_o a_o invisible_a manner_n which_o we_o take_v to_o be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n theo._n that_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o we_o here_o on_o earth_n we_o firm_o believe_v to_o our_o great_a comfort_n where_o two_o or_o three_o say_v our_o saviour_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n 28._o i_o be_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o again_o loâ_n i_o be_o always_o with_o you_o until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o he_o be_v corporal_o present_a under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n that_o be_v neither_o avouch_v by_o chrysostome_n nor_o admit_v by_o we_o it_o be_v your_o vain_a and_o fruitless_a fancy_n us._n phi._n how_o can_v his_o body_n be_v present_a but_o bodily_a theo._n these_o word_n of_o chrysostom_n infer_v not_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v present_a but_o that_o christ_n be_v present_a and_o since_o christ_n consist_v of_o two_o nature_n the_o divine_a may_v be_v present_a though_o the_o humane_a be_v not_o christ_n absent_a say_v austen_n be_v also_o present_a for_o unless_o he_o be_v present_a 50._o he_o can_v not_o be_v hold_v of_o we_o ourselves_o but_o because_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o say_v lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o for_o ever_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v both_o depart_v and_o yet_o here_o he_o be_v return_v whence_o he_o come_v and_o have_v not_o yet_o forsake_v us._n us._n for_o his_o body_n he_o have_v carry_v into_o heaven_n but_o he_o divine_a majesty_n he_o have_v not_o take_v from_o the_o world_n neither_o be_v his_o divine_a power_n only_o present_a with_o we_o but_o also_o we_o have_v his_o humane_a nature_n many_o way_n with_o we_o in_o this_o world_n ibidem_fw-la habes_fw-la christum_fw-la in_fw-la praesenti_fw-la &_o in_fw-la futuro_fw-la in_o praesenti_fw-la per_fw-la fidem_fw-la in_fw-la praesenti_fw-la per_fw-la signum_fw-la christi_fw-la in_fw-la praesenti_fw-la per_fw-la baptismatis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la substance_n in_fw-la praesenti_fw-la per_fw-la altaris_fw-la cibum_fw-la &_o potum_fw-la thou_o have_v christ_n say_v austen_n in_o this_o world_n and_o in_o the_o next_o in_o this_o world_n by_o faith_n in_o this_o world_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o world_n by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n in_o this_o world_n by_o the_o meat_n and_o drink_v of_o the_o altar_n by_o these_o thing_n we_o have_v he_o in_o this_o world_n not_o real_o local_o or_o corporal_o but_o true_o comfortable_o and_o effectual_o so_o as_o our_o body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n be_v sanctiââed_v and_o preserve_v by_o he_o against_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n when_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o face_n to_o face_n in_o that_o fullness_n and_o perfection_n which_o we_o now_o be_v assure_v of_o by_o faith_n and_o prepare_v for_o by_o cleanesse_n and_o meekness_n of_o the_o inward_a man_n the_o whole_a church_n therefore_o never_o christ._n cry_v upon_o the_o sacrament_n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a lord_n beè_fw-fr merciful_a to_o i_o a_o sinner_n lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n on_o we_o you_o do_v sinful_o slander_v they_o they_o do_v exact_o and_o precise_o distinguish_v the_o corruptible_a creature_n from_o the_o eternal_a creator_n and_o teach_v all_o man_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n from_o the_o element_n which_o be_v before_o their_o eye_n to_o he_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o shall_v come_v from_o thence_o and_o from_o no_o place_n else_o to_o judge_v the_o world_n saint_n austen_n will_v have_v the_o rude_a one_o to_o be_v teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v 26._o signacula_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarâm_fw-la visibilia_fw-la sed_fw-la res_fw-la invisibiles_fw-la in_o eye_n honorari_fw-la visible_a scale_n of_o thing_n divine_a but_o the_o thing_n visible_a to_o be_v honour_v in_o they_o and_o as_o if_o the_o case_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o no_o man_n can_v well_o doubt_v thereof_o he_o say_v 10._o si_fw-la ad_fw-la ipsas_fw-la res_fw-la visibiles_fw-la quibus_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la tractantur_fw-la animum_fw-la conferamus_fw-la quis_fw-la nesciat_fw-la eas_fw-la esse_fw-la corruptibiles_fw-la si_fw-mi autem_fw-la ad_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la illas_fw-la agitur_fw-la quis_fw-la non_fw-la videat_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la corrumpi_fw-la if_o we_o look_v to_o the_o visible_a thing_n or_o element_n by_o which_o the_o sacrament_n be_v perform_v who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o they_o be_v corruptible_a but_o if_o we_o look_v to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o they_o who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o that_o can_v not_o be_v corrupt_v saint_n ambrose_n say_v 3._o venisti_fw-la ad_fw-la altar_n vidisti_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la posita_fw-la super_fw-la altar_n &_o ipsam_fw-la quidem_fw-la miratus_fw-la es_fw-la creaturam_fw-la tamen_fw-la creatura_fw-la solemnis_fw-la &_o nota_fw-la thou_o come_v to_o the_o altar_n and_o see_v the_o sacrament_n place_v on_o the_o altar_n and_o maruel_v at_o the_o very_a creature_n yet_o be_v it_o a_o usual_a and_o know_v creature_n origen_n purposely_o create_v what_o part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n do_v sanctify_v the_o receiver_n say_v matt._n ille_fw-la cibus_fw-la qui_fw-la sanctificatur_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o obsecrationem_fw-la iuxta_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la habet_fw-la materiale_a in_fw-la ventrem_fw-la abit_fw-la &_o in_fw-la secessum_fw-la eijcitur_fw-la nec_fw-la materia_fw-la panis_fw-la sed_fw-la super_fw-la âllum_fw-la sermo_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la prodest_fw-la non_fw-fr indignus_fw-fr domino_fw-la commedenti_fw-la illum_fw-la haec_fw-la de_fw-la typico_fw-la symbolicoque_fw-la corpore_fw-la the_o meat_n which_o be_v sanctify_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n as_o touch_v the_o material_a part_n which_o it_o have_v go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o so_o forth_o by_o the_o privy_a neither_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o bread_n it_o that_o profit_v the_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o the_o word_n rehearse_v over_o it_o this_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o typical_a and_o figurative_a body_n for_o this_o cause_n the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a direct_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o understanding_n above_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o they_o see_v heart_n and_o by_o faith_n to_o conceive_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n slay_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n and_o propose_v and_o exhibit_v on_o the_o lord_n table_n in_o those_o mystery_n their_o word_n be_v nice_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d let_v we_o not_o base_o bend_v our_o mind_n on_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n that_o be_v set_v before_o our_o eye_n at_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o lift_v up_o our_o thought_n let_v we_o by_o faith_n behold_v on_o on_o or_o in_o the_o sacred_a table_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n which_o admonition_n the_o church_n ever_o after_o observe_v by_o cry_v upon_o the_o people_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n which_o they_o see_v but_o from_o they_o to_o he_o that_o live_v and_o reign_v in_o heaven_n who_o they_o adore_v in_o equal_a degree_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o who_o they_o behold_v and_o touch_v with_o the_o eye_n and_o hand_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o not_o with_o their_o corporal_a limb_n or_o sense_n faith_n quomodo_n in_o caelum_fw-la mittam_fw-la manum_fw-la ut_fw-la ibi_fw-la sedentem_fw-la teneam_fw-la mitte_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o tenuisti_fw-la how_o shall_v i_o send_v up_o my_o hand_n to_o heaven_n to_o reach_v christ_n sit_v there_o send_v thy_o faith_n say_v austen_n and_o thou_o hold_v he_o fast_n enough_o vesiââci_fw-la fide_fw-la christus_fw-la tangitur_fw-la fide_fw-la christus_fw-la videtur_fw-la non_fw-la corpore_fw-la tangitur_fw-la non_fw-la oculis_fw-la comprehenditur_fw-la by_o faith_n say_v ambrose_n christ_n be_v touch_v by_o faith_n christ_n be_v see_v he_o be_v not_o touch_v with_o our_o body_n not_o view_v with_o our_o eye_n and_o therefore_o chrysostome_n say_v 24._o he_o must_v fly_v not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o on_o high_a that_o will_v come_v to_o this_o body_n ibidem_fw-la even_o to_o heaven_n itself_o or_o rather_o above_o the_o heaven_n for_o where_o the_o body_n be_v there_o also_o will_n the_o eagle_n be_v phi._n table_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a say_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n be_v on_o the_o sacred_a table_n where_o then_o do_v they_o seek_v he_o or_o make_v they_o prayer_n unto_o he_o but_o on_o the_o altar_n theo._n they_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n to_o he_o that_o sit_v in_o heaven_n and_o from_o heaven_n look_v down_o upon_o they_o and_o their_o prayer_n before_o they_o can_v please_v god_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o same_o place_n and_o person_n that_o their_o heart_n be_v you_o must_v therefore_o either_o fasten_v their_o heart_n and_o faith_n to_o the_o sacrament_n or_o suffer_v their_o prayer_n together_o with_o their_o affection_n to_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n 3_o where_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n
hoc_fw-la it_o be_v a_o common_a question_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o pronoune_n this_o whether_o bread_n or_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o bread_n for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n nor_o yet_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o it_o appear_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o transubstantiation_n till_o the_o word_n be_v all_o pronounce_v to_o this_o demand_n i_o say_v that_o by_o the_o word_n this_o transubstantiation_n nothing_o be_v mean_v but_o it_o be_v there_o put_v material_o without_o any_o signification_n at_o all_o thus_o you_o turn_v and_o toss_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n so_o long_o till_o you_o bring_v all_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v and_o say_v at_o his_o last_o supper_n to_o plain_v nothing_o with_o such_o unchristian_a toy_n be_v your_o school_n fraught_v doubt_v and_o the_o world_n deceive_v such_o monster_n you_o hatch_v when_o once_o you_o leave_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o father_n and_o fall_v to_o broach_v your_o own_o guess_n but_o you_o must_v either_o admit_v our_o explication_n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n for_o the_o right_a order_n and_o perfit_v of_o christ_n word_n or_o else_o dissent_v from_o the_o manifest_a scripture_n from_o all_o the_o catholic_a father_n and_o with_o shame_n enough_o from_o your_o own_o fellow_n and_o fancy_n phi._n we_o stick_v not_o so_o much_o at_o the_o fill_n up_o of_o the_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v as_o at_o the_o construe_a and_o expound_v of_o they_o you_o delude_v they_o with_o trope_n and_o signification_n figure_n as_o if_o christ_n have_v be_v speak_v parable_n and_o not_o ordain_v sacrament_n we_o say_v there_o must_v be_v a_o real_a truth_n and_o active_a force_n in_o they_o to_o perform_v the_o letter_n as_o it_o lie_v for_o in_o scripture_n so_o long_o as_o the_o letter_n may_v possible_o be_v true_a we_o may_v not_o fly_v to_o figure_n theo._n in_o that_o you_o say_v right_a we_o must_v embrace_v the_o sense_n which_o be_v occurant_a in_o the_o letter_n before_o all_o other_o if_o it_o agree_v with_o faith_n and_o good_a manner_n but_o if_o it_o cross_a either_o of_o they_o we_o must_v beware_v the_o letter_n lest_o it_o kill_v and_o seek_v for_o a_o other_o and_o deep_a sense_n which_o must_v needs_o be_v figurative_a that_o direction_n s._n augustine_n give_v to_o all_o man_n when_o they_o read_v the_o scripture_n speaker_n iste_fw-la omnino_fw-la modus_fw-la est_fw-la locutionis_fw-la inveniendae_fw-la propriáne_fw-la a_o figurata_fw-la sit_fw-la ut_fw-la quicquid_fw-la in_o sermone_fw-la divino_fw-la neque_fw-la ad_fw-la morum_fw-la honestatem_fw-la nec_fw-la ad_fw-la fidei_fw-la veritatem_fw-la proprie_fw-la referri_fw-la potest_fw-la figuratum_fw-la esse_fw-la cognoscas_fw-la this_o be_v the_o perfect_a way_n to_o discern_v whether_o a_o speech_n be_v proper_a or_o figurative_a that_o whatsoever_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v proper_o refer_v either_o to_o integrity_n of_o manner_n or_o verity_n of_o faith_n thou_o resolve_v thyself_o it_o be_v figurative_a phi._n that_o prescription_n be_v very_o sound_a but_o it_o further_v not_o your_o figurative_a sense_n for_o the_o letter_n of_o these_o word_n which_o we_o stand_v for_o be_v neither_o against_o faith_n nor_o good_a manner_n theo._n the_o literal_a acception_n of_o these_o word_n as_o they_o lie_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n be_v first_o impossible_a by_o your_o own_o confession_n next_o blasphemous_a by_o the_o plain_a level_n of_o our_o creed_n and_o last_o barbarous_a by_o the_o very_a touch_n and_o instinct_n of_o man_n nature_n phi._n charge_v you_o christ_n with_o so_o many_o foul_a oversighte_n in_o speak_v the_o word_n theo._n the_o word_n which_o christ_n speak_v be_v gracious_a and_o religious_a we_o know_v but_o where_o there_o may_v be_v bring_v a_o double_a construction_n of_o they_o a_o carnal_a or_o a_o spiritual_a a_o literal_a or_o a_o sacramental_a the_o literal_a construction_n which_o you_o will_v needs_o defend_v to_o deface_v the_o other_o be_v we_o say_v reprove_v as_o no_o part_n of_o our_o saviour_n meaning_n by_o those_o three_o bar_n which_o we_o propose_v phi._n you_o propose_v much_o but_o you_o prove_v little_a theo._n i_o shall_v prove_v even_o as_o much_o as_o you_o do_v if_o i_o shall_v prove_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o i_o propose_v shall_v not_o want_v proof_n the_o first_o your_o own_o friend_n will_v help_v i_o to_o prove_v your_o law_n say_v blasphemy_n hoc_fw-la tamen_fw-la est_fw-la impossible_a quod_fw-la panis_fw-la sit_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la yet_o this_o be_v impossible_a that_o bread_n shall_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n why_o strive_v you_o then_o for_o that_o which_o yourselves_o grant_v be_v not_o possible_a to_o be_v true_a why_o forsake_v you_o the_o mystical_a interpretation_n which_o be_v possible_a what_o great_a vanity_n can_v you_o show_v than_o to_o cleave_v to_o that_o sense_n which_o you_o see_v can_v not_o stand_v if_o it_o be_v bread_n how_o can_v it_o be_v christ_n if_o it_o be_v christ_n how_o can_v it_o be_v bread_n the_o second_o be_v as_o clear_v for_o if_o bread_n in_o proper_a and_o precise_a speech_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la bread_n be_v also_o the_o feed_n of_o david_n ergo_fw-la bread_n be_v fasten_v to_o the_o cross_n for_o our_o sin_n ergo_fw-la bread_n be_v bury_v rise_v the_o three_o day_n from_o death_n and_o now_o sit_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n nay_o no_o question_n if_o bread_n be_v christ_n then_o be_v bread_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o second_o person_n in_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n which_o how_o well_o your_o stomach_n can_v digest_v we_o know_v not_o in_o truth_n our_o heart_n tremble_v to_o hear_v a_o earthly_a dead_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n by_o your_o literal_a &_o carnal_a devotion_n advance_v to_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n &_o grace_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n yea_o the_o live_n and_o everlasting_a god_n and_o yet_o if_o bread_n be_v true_o and_o proper_o christ_n these_o monstrous_a impiety_n you_o can_v not_o avoid_v three_o what_o can_v you_o devise_v more_o injurious_a and_o odious_a to_o christian_n mildness_n &_o manner_n piety_n than_o the_o letter_n of_o these_o word_n eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o flesh_n drink_v you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n have_v you_o be_v will_v in_o as_o plain_a term_n to_o crucify_v christ_n as_o you_o be_v will_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n you_o will_v not_o i_o trust_v have_v present_o band_v yourselves_o with_o the_o jew_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n but_o rather_o have_v stagger_v at_o the_o letter_n and_o seek_v for_o some_o far_a and_o other_o meaning_n you_o be_v now_o will_v to_o eat_v his_o flesh_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n which_o be_v a_o precept_n far_o more_o heinous_a &_o horrible_a in_fw-la christian_n behaviour_n and_o religion_n if_o you_o follow_v the_o letter_n as_o austen_n affirm_v 9_o it_o appear_v more_o horrible_a to_o eat_v man_n flesh_n than_o to_o kill_v it_o to_o drink_v man_n blood_n than_o to_o shed_v it_o and_o again_o the_o capernite_n 14._o be_v more_o excusable_a that_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o be_v in_o deed_n horrible_a in_o that_o they_o be_v speak_v as_o a_o blessing_n not_o as_o a_o curse_a 22._o they_o think_v say_v cyrill_a christ_n have_v invite_v they_o to_o eat_v the_o raw_a flesh_n of_o a_o man_n and_o drink_v blood_n which_o thing_n be_v horrible_a to_o the_o very_a ear_n why_o then_o press_v you_o the_o letter_n which_o be_v heinous_a &_o forget_v that_o the_o speech_n can_v not_o be_v religious_a except_o it_o be_v figurative_a uery_o s._n austen_n conclude_v the_o speech_n to_o be_v figurative_a for_o this_o only_a reason_n they_o if_o the_o scripture_n seem_v to_o command_v any_o vile_a or_o ill_a fact_n the_o speech_n be_v figurative_a except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o facinus_fw-la velflagitium_fw-la videtur_fw-la iubere_fw-la christ_n seem_v to_o command_v a_o wicked_a &_o sinful_a act_n figura_fw-la est_fw-la ergo_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o a_o figurative_a speech_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n &_o sweet_o &_o profitable_o to_o keep_v in_o mind_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v &_o wound_v for_o us._n if_o then_o the_o real_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o our_o mouth_n and_o actual_a drink_n of_o his_o blood_n with_o our_o lip_n be_v wicked_a and_o heinous_a why_o press_v you_o the_o letter_n of_o these_o word_n eat_v you_o this_o be_v my_o body_n drink_v you_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n against_o truth_n against_o faith_n against_o nature_n neither_o possibility_n nor_o christianity_n nor_o common_a honesty_n suffer_v your_o exposition_n to_o be_v good_a &_o s._n
after_o 12._o the_o manner_n of_o sacrament_n call_v the_o soul_n speech_n i_o can_v interpret_v this_o precept_n to_o consist_v of_o a_o sign_n or_o figure_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o speak_v in_o christ_n person_n he_o say_v 98._o this_o body_n which_o you_o see_v you_o shall_v not_o eat_v neither_o shall_v you_o drink_v the_o blood_n which_o they_o that_o crucify_v i_o shall_v shed_v i_o have_v commend_v a_o sacrament_n unto_o you_o that_o sacrament_n spiritual_o understand_v shall_v quicken_v you_o 16_o it_o be_v therefore_o as_o you_o hear_v before_o out_o of_o the_o same_o father_n a_o figure_n of_o speech_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n for_o the_o lord_n at_o his_o supper_n say_v he_o 3._o commend_v and_o deliver_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n cyprian_a name_n the_o lord_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n give_v bread_n and_o wine_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n on_o the_o cross_n he_o give_v his_o body_n to_o be_v wound_v by_o the_o soldier_n hand_n that_o sincere_a truth_n secret_o print_v in_o his_o apostle_n may_v teach_v the_o nation_n how_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o how_o the_o cause_n agree_v with_o their_o effect_n and_o different_a name_n and_o kind_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o one_o essence_n and_o the_o sign_n signify_v and_o the_o thing_n signify_v may_v be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n origen_n 7._o there_o be_v in_o the_o very_a gospel_n a_o letter_n that_o do_v kill_v not_o only_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v there_o a_o deadly_a letter_n find_v but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n there_o be_v a_o letter_n that_o do_v kill_v he_o which_o do_v not_o spiritual_o conceive_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v speak_v for_o if_o you_o take_v this_o say_n except_o you_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n according_a to_o the_o letter_n this_o letter_n kill_v and_o again_o matth._n not_o the_o matter_n of_o bread_n but_o the_o word_n recite_v over_o it_o do_v profit_v the_o worthy_a receiver_n this_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o typical_a and_o figurative_a body_n ambrose_n 9_o it_o be_v the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v crucify_v and_o bury_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o that_o true_a flesh_n the_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n before_o the_o blessing_n of_o these_o heavenly_a word_n it_o be_v call_v a_o other_o kind_n of_o thing_n after_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v thereby_o signify_v 11._o in_o eat_v and_o drink_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n we_o signify_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v offer_v for_o us._n 5._o the_o new_a testament_n be_v confirm_v by_o blood_n in_o a_o figure_n of_o which_o blood_n we_o receive_v the_o mystical_a cup._n the_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n service_n faith_n make_v this_o oblation_n ascribe_v reasonable_a and_o acceptable_a for_o we_o which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n hierom_n matth._n when_o the_o pascal_n lamb_n be_v eat_v jesus_n take_v bread_n which_o strengthen_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o go_v to_o the_o true_a sacrament_n of_o the_o passover_n that_o as_o melchisedec_n have_v do_v offer_v bread_n &_o wine_n in_o a_o profiguration_n of_o he_o so_o he_o likewise_o may_v represent_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n marci_n for_o jesus_n take_v bread_n and_o give_v thanks_n break_v it_o transfigure_v his_o body_n into_o the_o bread_n chrysostom_n 22._o this_o table_n have_v he_o prepare_v for_o his_o servant_n that_o he_o may_v every_o day_n for_o a_o similitude_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n show_v forth_o in_o a_o sacrament_n unto_o we_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o meschisedec_n monachus_fw-la before_o it_o be_v sanctify_v we_o call_v it_o bread_n but_o the_o divine_a grace_n once_o sanctifieng_v the_o same_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o priest_n it_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n &_o count_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n continue_v there_o still_o so_o that_o 11._o in_o the_o sanctify_a vessel_n there_o be_v not_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n be_v there_o contain_v nazianzene_n pasch_fw-mi let_v we_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o passover_o figurative_o notwithstanding_o as_o yet_o though_o this_o passeover_n be_v more_o manifest_a than_o the_o former_a theodoret._n figurative_a our_o saviour_n in_o deed_n change_v the_o name_n &_o call_v his_o body_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n the_o reason_n whereof_o be_v manifest_a to_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o divine_a mystery_n he_o will_v have_v the_o receiver_n of_o these_o heavenly_a mystery_n not_o look_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o hear_v the_o alteration_n of_o name_n believe_v the_o change_n which_o be_v there_o make_v by_o grace_n for_o he_o that_o call_v his_o natural_a body_n wheat_n &_o bread_n &_o name_v himself_o a_o vine_n the_o same_o lord_n honour_v the_o sign_n &_o element_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n which_o we_o see_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n &_o blood_n not_o change_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sign_n but_o cast_v grace_n unto_o nature_n prosper_n prosper_n the_o divine_a bread_n which_o be_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o deed_n but_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o word_n your_o own_o law_n thus_o expound_v the_o ibiden_v divine_a bread_n which_o true_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o improper_o wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v after_o a_o sort_n which_o be_v non_fw-la rei_fw-la veritate_fw-la sed_fw-la significante_fw-la mysterio_fw-la not_o in_o exactness_n of_o truth_n but_o in_o a_o mystery_n of_o signification_n so_o that_o this_o be_v the_o meaning_n it_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v thereby_o signify_v bede_n 22._o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o old_a passeover_n be_v end_v christ_n come_v to_o the_o new_a which_o the_o church_n be_v desirous_a to_o continue_v in_o remembrance_n of_o her_o redemption_n that_o in_o steed_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o a_o lamb_n he_o substitute_v the_o sacrament_n or_o sacred_a sign_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o same_o to_o who_o the_o lord_n swear_v and_o will_v not_o repent_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedec_n druthmarus_n mat._n the_o lord_n give_v his_o disciple_n the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v mindful_a of_o his_o deed_n they_o may_v always_o in_o a_o figure_n do_v that_o which_o he_o be_v to_o do_v for_o they_o &_o not_o forget_v his_o love_n this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v in_o a_o sacrament_n wine_n make_v glad_a &_o increase_v blood_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n the_o blood_n of_o chirst_n be_v apt_o figure_v thereby_o bertram_z dom._n that_o bread_n &_o wine_n be_v figurative_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o manner_n thereof_o be_v in_o a_o figure_n &_o representation_n in_o mysterio_fw-la non_fw-la veritate_fw-la in_o a_o mystery_n not_o in_o truth_n &_o plain_a speech_n phi._n you_o think_v to_o win_v the_o spur_n but_o you_o may_v chance_v to_o loose_a boot_n and_o all_o these_o place_n which_o you_o bring_v have_v a_o show_n before_o the_o simple_a but_o there_o be_v no_o pith_n nor_o substance_n in_o they_o and_o with_o one_o puff_n we_o can_v blow_v they_o all_o away_o theo._n brag_v it_o must_v be_v such_o a_o puff_n then_o as_o wherewith_o you_o first_o blow_v away_o christ_n and_o his_o gospel_n and_o bring_v in_o your_o own_o decree_n to_o over-rule_v both_o god_n and_o man_n with_o the_o breath_n of_o your_o mouth_n phi._n you_o scoff_n my_o meaning_n be_v that_o i_o can_v cross_v they_o all_o with_o one_o answer_n theo._n if_o they_o be_v spirit_n you_o may_v drive_v they_o away_o with_o cross_v but_o be_v ancient_a and_o godly_a father_n they_o will_v tell_v on_o their_o tale_n to_o your_o reproof_n cross_v you_o what_o you_o will_v or_o can_v in_o their_o way_n phi._n i_o will_v not_o cross_v it_o in_o their_o way_n but_o in_o you_o theo._n when_o you_o will_v wherefore_o serve_v my_o foot_n but_o to_o toss_v it_o out_o of_o the_o way_n or_o at_o least_o to_o step_v over_o it_o that_o it_o hinder_v not_o
mystery_n that_o christ_n be_v eat_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n theo._n none_o at_o all_o if_o you_o set_v your_o tooth_n and_o jaw_n on_o work_n to_o eat_v he_o as_o the_o capernite_n think_v they_o shall_v when_o they_o pervert_v the_o word_n of_o christ._n phi._n they_o suppose_v they_o shall_v have_v see_v and_o taste_v man_n flesh_n which_o be_v horrible_a theo._n eat_v as_o i_o have_v show_v you_o do_v consist_v not_o in_o see_v or_o taste_v but_o in_o cham_v and_o swallow_v &_o since_o you_o therein_o consent_v with_o the_o capernite_n though_o you_o can_v allege_v twenty_o diversity_n between_o their_o manner_n of_o eat_v &_o you_o yet_o both_o be_v corporal_a and_o contrary_a to_o that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n deliver_v in_o the_o sixth_o of_o johnâ_n â_z for_o that_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v be_v intend_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o man_n not_o to_o their_o throat_n or_o entrail_n and_o therefore_o well_o in_o cover_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o delude_v your_o sense_n you_o may_v differ_v from_o the_o capernite_n but_o in_o prepare_v your_o tooth_n and_o jaw_n for_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o draw_v his_o word_n from_o their_o mystical_a and_o figurative_a sense_n you_o join_v with_o the_o capernite_v against_o all_o the_o catholic_a father_n that_o ever_o write_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n phi._n have_v we_o think_v you_o ancient_a no_o father_n with_o we_o as_o well_o for_o the_o literal_a construction_n of_o christ_n word_n as_o for_o the_o it_o corporal_a eat_n of_o his_o flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n corporal_a i_o call_v it_o not_o because_o we_o see_v it_o or_o taste_v it_o as_o we_o do_v other_o meat_n but_o because_o we_o be_v sure_a it_o enter_v our_o mouth_n when_o we_o receive_v our_o right_n and_o be_v real_o contain_v in_o our_o body_n theo._n you_o may_v abuse_v some_o father_n to_o make_v a_o show_n but_o otherwise_o you_o have_v no_o ground_n in_o they_o either_o of_o your_o literal_a understanding_n christ_n speech_n or_o corporal_a eat_n of_o christ_n âlesh_n phi._n have_v we_o not_o calendar_n s._n damascen_n s._n epiphanius_n theophilact_fw-mi euthymius_n and_o other_o earnest_o press_v the_o literal_a construction_n of_o christ_n word_n against_o your_o sign_n and_o figure_n and_o as_o for_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n with_o our_o very_a mouth_n s._n austen_n s._n chrysostom_n s._n leo_n s._n gregory_n s._n cyril_n tertullian_n &_o other_o be_v resolute_a who_o i_o trust_v you_o will_v not_o condemn_v for_o capernites_n by_o this_o way_n the_o simple_a learn_v what_o to_o look_v for_o at_o your_o hand_n that_o will_v outface_v so_o plain_a a_o truth_n theo._n he_o that_o will_v be_v good_a at_o outface_v let_v he_o study_v your_o testament_n and_o he_o need_v none_o other_o teacher_n but_o what_o truth_n be_v it_o that_o we_o outface_v phi._n never_o father_n you_o say_v avouch_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n theo._n do_v i_o say_v no_o ancient_a father_n of_o which_o number_n i_o do_v not_o account_v these_o late_a grecian_n to_o be_v and_o therefore_o if_o they_o do_v contradict_v that_o which_o tertullian_n austen_n origen_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o do_v teach_v long_o before_o they_o we_o will_v not_o regard_v they_o but_o as_o yet_o i_o seeâ_n no_o such_o thing_n prove_v by_o they_o phi._n 14._o the_o proof_n be_v easy_a s._n damascene_fw-la rehearse_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n immediate_o add_v not_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o my_o body_n not_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o blood_n but_o my_o blood_n s._n epiphanius_n likewise_o christ_n say_v take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n 6._o he_o say_v not_o take_v eat_v the_o image_n of_o my_o body_n and_o theophilact_v matth._n bread_n be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o not_o a_o figure_n correspondent_a for_o he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v a_o figure_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o so_o euthymius_n 64._o christ_n say_v not_o these_o be_v sign_n of_o my_o body_n but_o these_o be_v my_o body_n these_o be_v manifest_a place_n and_o yet_o such_o be_v your_o impudency_n that_o you_o affirm_v no_o father_n ever_o urge_v the_o literal_a force_n of_o christ_n word_n and_o so_o for_o the_o corporal_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o our_o mouth_n s._n augustine_n say_v 118._o it_o have_v please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o in_o the_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n our_o lord_n body_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o mouth_n before_o other_o meat_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n sit_fw-la our_o mouth_n have_v get_v no_o small_a honour_n receive_v our_o lord_n body_n and_o s._n gregory_n the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v suck_v not_o only_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heart_n but_o also_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o s._n leo_n mensis_fw-la that_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o heart_n and_o tertullian_n carnis_fw-la our_o flesh_n do_v feed_v on_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o s._n cyril_n johanâ_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o this_o rude_a and_o earthly_a body_n shall_v be_v recover_v to_o immortality_n by_o touch_n taste_n and_o food_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n with_o itself_o you_o ask_v for_o father_n here_o they_o be_v both_o many_o in_o number_n and_o ancient_a in_o time_n to_o discharge_v we_o that_o we_o be_v no_o capernite_n and_o to_o refel_v your_o foolish_a vaunt_n that_o all_o antiquity_n be_v of_o the_o very_a same_o mind_n that_o you_o be_v now_o they_o it_o may_v be_v you_o never_o hear_v the_o place_n before_o if_o you_o do_v not_o i_o will_v pardon_v your_o ignorance_n so_o you_o repent_v your_o rashness_n theo._n yea_o sir_n i_o have_v see_v they_o and_z ââ_o may_v be_v weigh_v they_o better_o than_o ever_o you_o do_v and_o notwithstanding_o your_o magnificence_n it_o will_v appear_v you_o be_v not_o free_a from_o ignorance_n whatsoever_o you_o be_v from_o impudency_n phil._n i_o will_v burn_v my_o clothes_n to_o my_o shirt_n if_o ever_o you_o answer_v they_o theo._n but_o save_v your_o skin_n from_o the_o fire_n though_o you_o spare_v not_o other_o man_n blood_n nor_o bone_n phi._n we_o do_v use_v you_o but_o as_o heretic_n shall_v be_v use_v theo._n if_o it_o be_v heresy_n for_o we_o to_o serve_v god_n according_a to_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o son_n what_o be_v it_o for_o you_o to_o serve_v he_o with_o your_o own_o medlee_n phi._n you_o will_v fly_v the_o field_n rather_o than_o your_o life_n but_o i_o must_v keep_v you_o to_o it_o theo._n you_o run_v so_o fast_o from_o god_n and_o your_o prince_n that_o you_o may_v soon_o overgo_a we_o if_o we_o will_v fly_v but_o as_o yet_o i_o see_v no_o cause_n damascene_fw-la theophilact_fw-mi and_o euthymius_n press_v the_o letter_n of_o christes_fw-fr speech_n not_o to_o derive_v thence_o your_o carnal_a and_o guttural_a eat_n of_o christ_n flesh_n letter_n nor_o to_o control_v that_o which_o tertullian_n austen_n origen_n chrysostome_n and_o other_o man_n of_o far_o great_a learning_n and_o authority_n than_o these_o teach_v long_o before_o they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o to_o show_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o only_a token_n and_o bare_a sign_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o also_o carry_v with_o they_o and_o in_o they_o the_o virtue_n power_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o death_n and_o passion_n virtue_n euthymius_n christ_n say_v not_o these_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o these_o be_v my_o body_n and_o blood_n we_o must_v therefore_o not_o look_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v propose_v but_o to_o the_o virtue_n against_o they_o which_o defend_v that_o this_o sacrament_n do_v only_a figure_n not_o offer_v signify_v not_o exhibit_v grace_n the_o letter_n may_v well_o be_v force_v to_o prove_v the_o divine_a power_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o mystical_a elemenet_n against_o we_o which_o hold_v the_o visible_a sign_n in_o substance_n to_o be_v creature_n in_o signification_n mystery_n in_o operation_n and_o virtue_n the_o thing_n themselves_o who_o name_n they_o bearâ_n this_o illation_n conclude_v nothing_o yet_o for_o the_o better_a explication_n of_o himself_o and_o other_o use_v the_o like_a kind_n of_o speech_n theophilact_v add_v this_o word_n only_a mark_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v eat_v of_o we_o in_o the_o mystery_n johannis_n non_fw-la est_fw-la tantum_fw-la figuratio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la carnis_fw-la domini_fw-la be_v not_o a_o only_o figure_v of_o the_o lord_n flesh_n but_o the_o lord_n very_a flesh_n for_o he_o say_v not_o the_o bread_n which_o i_o will_v give_v be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o flesh_n effect_n but_o be_v my_o flesh_n their_o meaning_n be_v as_o we_o see_v
sacrament_n they_o be_v this_o make_v nothing_o for_o your_o local_a enclose_v of_o christ_n under_o accident_n neither_o for_o your_o corporal_a mingle_n of_o his_o flesh_n with_o your_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o two_o point_n that_o we_o chief_o detest_v in_o your_o real_a presence_n thus_o the_o great_a storm_n from_o which_o you_o think_v no_o roose_n can_v rescue_v we_o be_v half_o overpast_v and_o no_o hurt_n do_v if_o the_o rest_n fall_v as_o fair_a beside_o we_o it_o will_v be_v high_a time_n for_o your_o to_o leave_v dispute_v and_o fall_v to_o practise_v as_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o fellow_n do_v which_o be_v lurk_v at_o home_n to_o infuse_v a_o rebellion_n or_o stir_v abroad_o to_o boil_v it_o up_o to_o his_o height_n your_o kingdom_n will_v never_o reflorish_n by_o pen_n and_o paper_n you_o must_v lay_v more_o plot_n and_o make_v new_a marriage_n your_o time_n be_v short_a your_o rage_n great_a phi._n when_o you_o be_v confute_v by_o reason_n then_o begin_v you_o to_o charge_v we_o with_o treason_n but_o answer_v the_o place_n which_o we_o bring_v you_o or_o i_o will_v leave_v you_o i_o have_v somewhat_o else_o to_o do_v theo._n i_o think_v it_o be_v the_o true_a word_n you_o speak_v this_o month_n but_o a_o answer_n if_o that_o be_v all_o you_o look_v for_o you_o shall_v not_o lackâ_n âaweâ_n the_o father_n who_o you_o allege_v for_o eat_v the_o real_a &_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n &_o drink_v his_o blood_n with_o your_o mouth_n &_o throat_n be_v foul_o abuse_v &_o their_o word_n ignorant_o misconstrue_v if_o not_o purposely_o pervert_v phi._n be_v you_o there_o at_o host_n i_o see_v by_o your_o wind_a you_o will_v run_v to_o their_o meaning_n theo._n what_o wrong_a be_v that_o if_o by_o their_o own_o rule_n i_o recall_v you_o to_o the_o right_n conceive_v of_o their_o wordâ_n phi._n if_o you_o may_v make_v rule_n for_o religion_n we_o shall_v have_v some_o wise_a work_n of_o it_o i_o dare_v undertake_v theo._n if_o themselves_n make_v rule_n to_o direct_v their_o hearer_n lest_o their_o word_n shall_v happy_o be_v mistake_v you_o show_v both_o your_o religion_n &_o wisdom_n in_o refuse_v the_o same_o phi._n we_o refuse_v they_o not_o if_o they_o be_v they_o theo._n if_o they_o be_v not_o you_o may_v the_o soon_o repel_v they_o phi._n well_o then_o what_o be_v they_o the._n there_o shall_v not_o be_v many_o of_o they_o one_o will_v serve_v this_o turn_n phi._n that_o one_o then_o what_o be_v it_o the._n the_o sign_n have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o &_o therefore_o out_o of_o the_o place_n which_o you_o have_v bring_v you_o may_v not_o conclude_v that_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v actual_o eat_v with_o tooth_n sacrament_n or_o his_o blood_n real_o drink_v with_o your_o lip_n but_o rather_o that_o the_o visible_a sign_n &_o element_n which_o be_v corporal_o receive_v into_o your_o mouth_n &_o stomach_n have_v the_o virtue_n of_o those_o thing_n who_o name_n thây_v bear_v after_o consecration_n phi._n i_o think_v we_o shall_v have_v some_o such_o shift_n but_o trust_v i_o this_o of_o all_o other_o be_v the_o fond_a &_o absurde_a that_o you_o can_v make_v for_o what_o ground_n of_o faith_n shall_v persist_v unshake_a if_o you_o give_v man_n this_o scope_n to_o confess_v the_o nâmâs_n but_o not_o the_o thing_n so_o the_o jew_n may_v reply_v when_o christ_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o true_a mâssias_n that_o he_o be_v so_o call_v but_o not_o so_o in_o deed_n so_o any_o heretâk_n may_v delude_v the_o whole_a scripture_n if_o word_n shall_v stand_v as_o empty_a sound_n without_o their_o sense_n see_v to_o what_o misery_n you_o be_v drive_v while_o you_o withstand_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n how_o far_o better_a be_v you_o to_o adore_v the_o same_o with_o we_o catholic_v than_o to_o run_v into_o such_o heretical_a brier_n the._n your_o sumptuous_a exhortation_n be_v but_o a_o ridiculous_a judification_n of_o yourselves_o &_o other_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n word_n may_v be_v receive_v without_o their_o natural_a &_o due_a signification_n but_o in_o sacrament_n we_o say_v the_o sign_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o &_o therefore_o you_o must_v take_v good_a heed_n that_o you_o do_v not_o rash_o conclude_v that_o of_o the_o one_o which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o other_o lest_o you_o fall_v into_o that_o servitude_n &_o sickness_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o s._n austen_n warn_v you_o of_o before_o phi._n will_v you_o appoint_v when_o the_o father_n word_n shall_v be_v constere_v of_o the_o sign_n speech_n &_o wâen_o of_o the_o thing_n the._n neither_o we_o nor_o you_o themselves_o be_v the_o âittest_a man_n to_o limit_v what_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o sign_n &_o what_o of_o the_o thing_n phi._n and_o do_v they_o say_v they_o speak_v this_o which_o i_o allege_v of_o the_o sign_n the._n they_o do_v phi._n âf_o i_o shall_v stay_v here_o till_o that_o be_v prove_v i_o shall_v never_o go_v hence_o theo._n the_o matter_n be_v not_o so_o hard_a to_o be_v prove_v as_o you_o make_v it_o âathers_n for_o if_o they_o main_o teach_v that_o christ_n flesh_n be_v not_o eat_v with_o tooth_n not_o swallow_a with_o jaw_n not_o receive_v into_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o belly_n they_o must_v either_o contradict_v themselves_o which_o they_o do_v not_o or_o those_o speech_n which_o you_o bring_v must_v be_v understand_v of_o the_o sign_n call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n flesh_n &_o blood_n though_o in_o truth_n they_o be_v not_o those_o thing_n but_o sacrament_n of_o they_o as_o they_o by_o their_o own_o caution_n will_v instruct_v you_o phi._n i_o can_v not_o abide_v this_o go_n about_o the_o bush_n theo._n indeed_o madman_n will_v through_o the_o midst_n though_o they_o tear_v their_o flesh_n to_o the_o bone_n for_o their_o labour_n phi._n do_v you_o think_v we_o mad_a the._n it_o be_v great_a madness_n to_o sâea_v your_o own_o soul_n with_o the_o rigour_n of_o other_o man_n phrase_n when_o they_o give_v you_o warning_n to_o the_o contrary_a than_o to_o wound_v your_o own_o body_n with_o the_o sharpness_n of_o any_o thorn_n phi._n we_o press_v not_o their_o speech_n against_o their_o prescription_n you_o rather_o will_v frustrate_v their_o meaning_n with_o your_o figure_n the._n let_v they_o tell_v their_o own_o tale_n consecration_n what_o they_o teach_v concern_v the_o part_n of_o this_o sacrament_n &_o then_o it_o will_v soon_o be_v see_v whether_o you_o or_o we_o pervert_v they_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n in_o the_o bread_n &_o by_o like_a proportion_n in_o the_o wine_n that_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o the_o name_n the_o substance_n the_o power_n &_o operation_n when_o we_o see_v which_o of_o these_o three_o be_v change_v and_o which_o unchaunged_a the_o mist_n of_o error_n will_v soonâ_n be_v scatter_v the_o name_n we_o prove_v to_o be_v change_v by_o the_o general_a confession_n of_o all_o the_o father_n 1._o our_o saviour_n say_v theodoret_n change_v the_o name_n and_o call_v the_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n christ_n iâdaeos_fw-la call_v bread_n his_o body_n say_v tertullian_n chrismatis_fw-la the_o signify_v element_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n say_v cyprian_n 4._o before_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v ambrose_n that_o which_o be_v offer_v be_v call_v bread_n when_o once_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v rehearse_v it_o be_v now_o call_v not_o bread_n but_o his_o body_n quod_fw-la the_o bread_n say_v prosper_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o truth_n the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v the_o sacred_a sign_n of_o christ_n body_n chrysostom_n mânââl_n after_o sanctification_n it_o be_v discharge_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n and_o count_v worthy_a to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n notwithstanding_o the_o nature_n of_o brâad_n still_o remain_v rabanus_n 31._o because_o bread_n strengthen_v our_o body_n therefore_o be_v it_o âitly_o term_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n bertram_n dom._n the_o sign_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n &_o blood_n by_o reason_n they_o take_v the_o name_n of_o that_o thing_n who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v the_o general_a rule_n be_v plain_o set_v down_o by_o the_o famous_a clerk_n s._n austen_n in_o these_o word_n father_n if_o sacrament_n have_v not_o a_o certain_a likeness_n and_o resemblance_n to_o the_o thing_n who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o and_o for_o his_o similitude_n they_o common_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o therefore_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christes_fw-fr blood_n
of_o a_o corporal_a substance_n for_o your_o show_n without_o substance_n be_v not_o yet_o know_v but_o by_o secret_a efficiency_n prove_v the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_a virtue_n this_o common_a bread_n change_v into_o flesh_n and_o blood_n procure_v life_n and_o grow_v to_o our_o body_n &_o so_o by_o the_o usual_a course_n of_o these_o thing_n the_o weakness_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v succour_v and_o âaught_v by_o a_o sensible_a argument_n that_o the_o effect_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v in_o the_o visible_a sacrament_n &_o that_o we_o be_v unitââ_n to_o christ_n noâ_n so_o much_o by_o a_o corporal_a as_o by_o a_o spiritual_a transition_n ambrose_n 1._o perhaps_o tâou_o will_v say_v i_o âee_o the_o likeness_n i_o see_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o blood_n but_o it_o have_v a_o resemblance_n 4._o for_o as_o thou_o take_v a_o resemblance_n of_o his_o death_n so_o do_v thou_o drink_v a_o resemblance_n of_o his_o precious_a blood_n to_o this_o end_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o horror_n of_o blood_n and_o yet_o it_o may_v work_v the_o price_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o redemption_n may_v remain_v 1._o therefore_o for_o a_o similitude_n thou_o receave_v the_o sacrament_n sed_fw-la ver_fw-la ae_z naturae_fw-la gratiam_fw-la virtutemque_fw-la consequeris_fw-la but_o thou_o obtain_v thereby_o the_o grace_n &_o virtue_n of_o the_o true_a nature_n gelasius_n eâtichen_n by_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o receive_v we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n they_o true_o represent_v to_o we_o the_o virtue_n and_o effect_n of_o that_o principal_a mystery_n hilarius_n 8._o these_o thing_n taste_v &_o take_v bring_v this_o to_o pass_v that_o christ_n remain_v in_o we_o this_o be_v 127._o the_o virtue_n of_o that_o table_n to_o quicken_v the_o receiver_n leo_n quibus_fw-la in_o that_o mystical_a distribution_n of_o the_o spiritual_a nourishment_n that_o be_v give_v this_o be_v take_v that_o receive_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o heavenly_a meat_n we_o may_v be_v change_v into_o his_o flesh_n who_o be_v make_v flesh_n for_o us._n chrysostom_n mâââh_n let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o spiritual_a dug_n of_o this_o chalice_n and_o suck_v thence_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n 26._o austen_n the_o sacrament_n be_v one_o thing_n the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o other_o thing_n manducat_fw-la every_o man_n receive_v his_o part_n whereby_o grace_n itself_o be_v call_v part_n and_o where_o 77._o the_o sacrament_n be_v common_a to_o all_o grace_n be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o which_o be_v the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o again_o the_o capernites_n 27._o think_v he_o will_v have_v give_v they_o his_o body_n but_o he_o tell_v they_o he_o will_v ascend_v to_o heaven_n no_o doubt_n he_o mean_v whole_a when_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n ascendingâ_n where_o he_o be_v before_o sure_o then_o shall_v you_o see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o give_v his_o body_n that_o way_n which_o you_o imagine_v sure_o then_o shall_v you_o perceive_v that_o his_o grace_n be_v not_o consume_v with_o bite_a euthymius_n they_o he_o do_v change_v these_o thing_n unspeakable_o into_o his_o very_a body_n that_o quicken_v and_o into_o his_o very_a precious_a blood_n and_o into_o the_o grace_n of_o they_o bothâ_n we_o must_v therefore_o not_o look_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n propose_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n but_o unto_o the_o virtue_n of_o they_o wherefore_o theodoretes_n word_n be_v most_o true_a 2._o the_o sign_n which_o be_v see_v christ_n do_v honour_n with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o change_v the_o nature_n or_o substance_n of_o they_o but_o cast_v grace_n unto_o nature_n and_o so_o do_v ambrose_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v 4._o if_o there_o be_v so_o great_a strength_n in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesu_n that_o all_o thing_n begin_v to_o be_v when_o they_o be_v not_o how_o much_o more_o shall_v it_o be_v of_o force_n that_o the_o mystical_a element_n shall_v be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v before_o and_o yet_o be_v change_v into_o a_o other_o thing_n the_o same_o in_o earthly_a matter_n and_o substance_n which_o they_o be_v before_o change_v in_o virtue_n power_n and_o work_v whereby_o we_o see_v they_o bear_v not_o only_o the_o name_n but_o also_o the_o fruit_n and_o effect_n of_o those_o thing_n who_o sacrament_n they_o be_v this_o be_v their_o doctrine_n touch_v the_o visible_a part_n of_o this_o sacrament_n tooth_n which_o be_v see_v with_o eye_n feel_v with_o hand_n and_o druse_v with_o tooth_n of_o that_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o enter_v our_o mouth_n and_o rest_v in_o our_o bowel_n and_o that_o for_o the_o cause_n which_o i_o before_o rehearse_v aââer_v consecration_n be_v euâry_o where_o call_v by_o thâm_n the_o lord_n body_n but_o that_o the_o natural_a flesh_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v thâ_n other_o and_o inward_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n enter_v the_o mouth_n or_o abide_v the_o tooth_n or_o pass_v down_o the_o throat_n or_o loâgeth_v in_o the_o stomach_n this_o be_v a_o position_n whole_o repugnant_a both_o to_o father_n and_o scripture_n belly_n do_v you_o not_o know_v say_v christ_n that_o whatsoever_o thing_n from_o without_o enter_v into_o a_o man_n can_v not_o defile_v he_o because_o it_o enter_v not_o into_o his_o heart_n but_o into_o the_o belly_n then_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o saviour_n nothing_o can_v enter_v âoth_v the_o hâaât_n &_o the_o bâlly_n but_o the_o flesh_n of_o chrisâ_n enter_v into_o the_o heart_n ergo_fw-la ãâ¦ã_o 6._o the_o belly_n say_v paul_n be_v for_o meat_n &_o meat_n for_o the_o belly_n and_o god_n will_v destroy_v both_o it_o and_o they_o the_o body_n of_o chrâst_n gâd_v wâll_n not_o destroy_v it_o be_v therefore_o no_o meat_n for_o the_o belly_n if_o not_o for_o the_o ââlliâ_n than_o not_o for_o the_o mouth_n 15._o because_o every_o thing_n that_o enter_v the_o mouth_n go_v into_o the_o belly_n and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o âraught_n but_o so_o base_o to_o thânk_v of_o the_o flâsh_n of_o christ_n be_v apparent_a and_o ãâã_d wickedness_n eâgo_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n neither_o fill_v our_o belly_n nor_o enter_v ouâ_n moââââ_n 7._o for_o nothing_o that_o enter_v the_o mouth_n can_v either_o defile_v or_o sanctify_v meatâs_v 8._o say_v paul_n whiâh_o pass_n by_o the_o mouth_n do_v not_o commend_v we_o unto_o âod_n neither_o do_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n which_o be_v our_o sanctificationâ_n conâââ_n of_o mâats_n and_o drink_v 17._o but_o christ_n 13._o with_o his_o blood_n do_v sanctify_v the_o people_n and_o 6._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flâsh_n &_o drink_v my_o blood_n say_v âe_z remain_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o and_o have_v eternal_a life_n ergo_fw-la neâther_n his_o flesh_n nor_o ââs_o blood_n enter_v ouâ_n mâutheâ_n to_o be_v short_a 3_o christ_n dwell_v not_o in_o belly_n by_o local_a comprehension_n but_o in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n his_o flâhe_n see_v not_o âur_n body_n for_o a_o tiâe_n but_o our_o soul_n for_o ever_o his_o word_n be_v speak_v not_o of_o our_o mouth_n which_o bellevue_v not_o âut_v of_o our_o spirit_n which_o have_v no_o flesh_n nor_o bone_n and_o consequent_o neither_o tooth_n to_o grind_v nor_o jaw_n to_o swallow_v but_o only_a âaith_n and_o understanding_n let_v all_o this_o be_v âââde_v if_o the_o learned_a and_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o conclude_v the_o same_o chrysostome_n loân_n care_v not_o for_o the_o nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n but_o of_o the_o spirit_n christ_n be_v the_o bread_n which_o âeeââth_v not_o the_o body_n but_o the_o soul_n and_o 9_o fill_v not_o the_o belly_n but_o the_o mind_n ambrose_n ãâã_d christ_n be_v in_o that_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n esâaâis_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o no_o bodily_a but_o ghostly_a meat_n not_o this_o bread_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n but_o the_o bread_n of_o eternal_a life_n be_v it_o that_o uphold_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o soul_n cyprian_a doââ_n as_o often_o as_o we_o do_v this_o we_o wheâ_n not_o our_o tooth_n to_o bite_v but_o we_o break_v the_o sanctify_a bread_n with_o a_o sincere_a faith_n cyril_n 28._o let_v we_o therefore_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v labour_v not_o for_o the_o meat_n which_o go_v into_o the_o belly_n but_o for_o the_o spiritual_a food_n which_o confirm_v our_o heart_n and_o lead_v we_o to_o eternal_a life_n austen_n sigma_fw-la it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o devour_v christ_n with_o tooth_n 33._o prepare_v not_o your_o jaw_n but_o your_o heart_n we_o take_v but_o a_o morsel_n &_o our_o hart_n be_v replenish_v therefore_o not_o that_o which_o be_v see_v but_o that_o which_o be_v beleve_v do_v feed_v 25._o why_o provide_v thou_o thy_o tooth_n &_o thy_o belly_n believe_v &_o thou_o have_v eat_v beâtran_n at_o
will_v conâuâe_v my_o selâe_n theo._n no_o the_o clearness_n of_o truth_n be_v such_o that_o you_o can_v not_o shadow_v the_o beam_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o in_o a_o bravery_n you_o do_v admit_v it_o though_o now_o you_o will_v to_o your_o owlelight_n again_o phi._n this_o be_v counsel_n to_o i_o i_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v theo._n dâd_v you_o not_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v very_o true_a thât_n in_o this_o sacrament_n the_o sign_n after_o consecration_n do_v carry_v the_o name_n and_o effect_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o phi._n yea_o i_o do_v theo._n recaât_v you_o that_o phi._n i_o do_v not_o theo._n then_o be_v the_o place_n which_o you_o bring_v for_o the_o reâl_n eat_v of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o your_o mouth_n and_o tooth_n return_v back_o without_o your_o conclusion_n for_o the_o sign_n which_o be_v call_v after_o consecration_n by_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n can_v do_v enter_v our_o mouth_n and_o pass_v our_o throat_n the_o true_a flâsh_n &_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o but_o âre_n eat_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n only_o of_o the_o inward_a man_n by_o faithful_a devotion_n and_o affection_n prepare_v the_o hart_n that_o christ_n may_v lodge_v there_o &_o devil_n there_o where_o he_o dâlightâth_v and_o not_o in_o the_o mouth_n and_o âawes_n of_o man_n which_o be_v no_o place_n for_o he_o that_o sitâeth_v in_o heauân_n whither_o we_o must_v fly_v with_o the_o spiritual_a wing_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n before_o we_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o he_o phi._n you_o shall_v not_o so_o delude_v i_o the_o rule_n â_o grant_v be_v veây_o true_a but_o how_o prove_v you_o that_o these_o speech_n muât_v be_v so_o constââed_v themselves_o in_o other_o case_n it_o may_v be_v true_a though_o not_o in_o this_o theo._n if_o the_o rule_n which_o i_o lay_v down_o be_v very_o true_a than_o your_o place_n can_v inâerre_v nothing_o âor_a so_o much_o as_o the_o word_n which_o you_o bring_v may_v be_v speak_v as_o well_o of_o the_o sign_n as_o of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o and_o in_o that_o case_n the_o promise_n receive_v a_o double_a construction_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n how_o can_v your_o conclusion_n stand_v goâd_v import_v that_o sense_n which_o be_v not_o only_o most_o doubt_a and_o least_o prove_v but_o âlaâly_o deny_v by_o the_o same_o father_n in_o other_o place_n as_o i_o have_v show_v phi._n tutâe_v i_o will_v not_o be_v mock_v wiâh_v such_o iâstes_n you_o shall_v answer_v thâm_a place_n by_o place_n as_o i_o cite_v they_o or_o else_o i_o will_v not_o speak_v one_o word_n more_o theo._n you_o importune_v i_o to_o spend_v time_n which_o now_o wax_v short_a but_o it_o will_v be_v the_o worse_a for_o yourself_o your_o egerne_n without_o truth_n will_v be_v your_o own_o discredit_n and_o the_o more_o particular_o the_o more_o plain_o it_o will_v appear_v phi._n i_o have_v eye_n advantage_n in_o their_o word_n against_o your_o evasion_n â18_n which_o i_o will_v not_o omit_v theo._n in_o augustine_n &_o chrysostome_n and_o tertullian_n you_o have_v utter_o none_o austen_n say_v that_o in_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n as_o this_o be_v it_o have_v please_v the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o the_o sacred_a and_o sanctify_a bread_n which_o after_o a_o sort_n be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n &_o sacrament_n of_o his_o bodieâ_n shall_v enter_v the_o mouth_n before_o other_o meat_n that_o sââue_v only_o to_o feed_v &_o nourish_v ouâ_n fleshy_a chrysostome_n say_v 12._o it_o be_v no_o small_a honour_n that_o our_o mouth_n have_v get_v by_o receive_v the_o sanctify_a bread_n after_o consecration_n cor._n count_v worthy_a to_o be_v call_v the_o lord_n body_n mânach_n though_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n still_o remain_v and_o indeed_o so_o be_v it_o no_o small_a both_o comfort_n and_o honour_n that_o god_n have_v vouâsaâed_v to_o confirm_v and_o âeale_v his_o mercy_n unto_o we_o with_o these_o element_n that_o be_v convert_v into_o our_o fââsh_n to_o show_v we_o that_o we_o be_v as_o real_o inve_v &_o strengthen_v with_o his_o grace_n and_o ârueth_n as_o our_o body_n be_v nourish_v and_o increase_v with_o the_o â_z and_o sacrament_n of_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o that_o end_n tertullian_n say_v our_o mânach_n flâsh_n see_v on_o the_o bread_n which_o sea_n christ_n call_v his_o body_n and_o have_v in_o it_o the_o âffâcts_n of_o his_o body_n that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v replenish_v with_o god_n phi._n these_o be_v your_o correction_n oâ_n their_o speech_n they_o be_v not_o their_o intention_n theo._n look_v better_o to_o they_o and_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o i_o have_v add_v no_o word_n but_o such_o as_o themselves_o in_o other_o place_n have_v delâuered_v to_o declare_v their_o own_o both_o meaning_n and_o speak_v phi._n the_o rest_n do_v make_v for_o us._n theo._n cyril_n say_v nothing_o but_o that_o as_o the_o soul_n have_v faith_n and_o grace_n to_o cleanse_v it_o and_o prepare_v it_o to_o eternal_a life_n so_o body_n it_o be_v needful_a that_o our_o rude_a and_o earthly_a body_n shall_v be_v bring_v to_o immortality_n by_o corporal_a and_o earthly_a food_n that_o our_o body_n touch_v taste_v and_o feed_v on_o creature_n like_o themselves_o may_v take_v they_o as_o pledge_n of_o our_o resurrection_n gregory_n compare_v the_o two_o passover_n the_o jew_n and_o we_o and_o allude_v to_o the_o story_n of_o they_o âaith_n sit_fw-la the_o blood_n of_o our_o passeover_n be_v sprinkle_v on_o both_o post_n when_o it_o be_v drink_v not_o only_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n as_o the_o cup_n be_v which_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o sacrament_n be_v the_o communion_n of_o christ_n blood_n but_o also_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o hart_n which_o be_v the_o true_a drink_n of_o christ_n blood_n phi._n we_o will_v none_o of_o that_o by_o your_o leave_n you_o must_v grant_v that_o in_o body_n strict_a and_o precise_a speech_n according_a to_o the_o word_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v drink_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul_n theophil_n have_v the_o soul_n a_o mouth_n in_o strict_a and_o precise_a speech_n or_o have_v she_o lip_n to_o drink_v according_a to_o the_o letter_n phi._n will_v you_o make_v i_o such_o a_o fool_n as_o so_o to_o think_v theo._n then_o if_o one_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n be_v figurative_a why_o not_o the_o other_o if_o that_o which_o he_o do_v most_o urge_v be_v not_o literal_a why_o shall_v the_o letter_n be_v eracted_a in_o the_o hard_a and_o unlikely_a part_n of_o the_o comparison_n if_o the_o whole_a be_v but_o a_o allusion_n why_o eract_v you_o that_o strictness_n and_o preciseness_n of_o the_o speech_n in_o either_o part_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v be_v real_o drink_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o soul._n if_o it_o be_v corporal_a how_o can_v it_o enter_v the_o soul_n if_o it_o be_v spiritual_a how_o can_v it_o enter_v the_o mouth_n and_o if_o those_o be_v gregory_n word_n which_o your_o ow_v law_n assign_v to_o he_o in_o the_o very_a same_o homily_n his_o exposition_n shake_v your_o real_a presence_n more_o than_o all_o the_o authority_n you_o can_v bring_v shall_v settle_v it_o pascha_fw-la quidam_fw-la non_fw-la improbabiliter_fw-la exponunt_fw-la hoc_fw-la loco_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la veritatem_fw-la ipsam_fw-la eorundem_fw-la efficientiam_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la remissionem_fw-la some_z not_o amiss_o do_v expound_v the_o truth_n of_o christ_n flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o this_o place_n to_o be_v the_o very_a efficience_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n take_v this_o construction_n with_o you_o &_o bring_v out_o of_o greg._n or_o leo_n what_o you_o can_v it_o will_v not_o help_v the_o tight_a of_o a_o bare_o corn_n phi._n s._n leo_n say_v 6._o you_o ought_v so_o to_o communicate_v at_o the_o sacred_a table_n that_o you_o doubt_v nothing_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la ore_fw-la sumitur_fw-la quod_fw-la fide_fw-la creditur_fw-la &_o frustra_fw-la ab_fw-la illis_fw-la amen_o respondetur_fw-la à _fw-la quibus_fw-la contra_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la accipitur_fw-la disputatur_fw-la for_o examine_v that_o be_v receive_v with_o the_o mouth_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o answer_v amen_o which_o dispute_n against_o the_o thing_n that_o themselves_o receive_v o_o noble_a lion_n and_o such_o as_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o europe_n will_v never_o encounter_v theo._n you_o speak_v like_o a_o lion_n but_o the_o spite_n be_v your_o ear_n be_v too_o long_o to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o beast_n of_o that_o metal_n you_o foolish_o
say_v but_o what_o ancient_a father_n ever_o say_v so_o before_o you_o yea_o rather_o why_o forget_v you_o that_o this_o be_v often_o refute_v by_o they_o as_o a_o lewd_a and_o heretical_a fancy_n do_v not_o saint_n augustine_n of_o purpose_n debate_v the_o matter_n and_o in_o evident_a term_n give_v this_o flat_a resolution_n against_o you_o 57_o doubt_v not_o say_v he_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n to_o be_v now_o there_o whence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n but_o keep_v in_o mind_n and_o hold_v assure_v the_o christian_n confession_n that_o he_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v now_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o inde_fw-la from_o thence_o from_o no_o place_n else_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o so_o shall_v he_o come_v by_o the_o very_a witness_n of_o angel_n as_o he_o be_v see_v to_o go_v into_o heaven_n that_o be_v substantia_fw-la in_o the_o very_a same_o form_n &_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n the_o whâch_n he_o have_v endue_v with_o immortality_n not_o bereave_v of_o the_o former_a nature_n according_a to_o this_o form_n of_o his_o manhood_n we_o must_v not_o think_v he_o to_o be_v diffund_v in_o every_o place_n for_o we_o must_v beware_v that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o defend_v the_o godhead_n of_o a_o man_n that_o we_o take_v from_o he_o the_o body_n truth_n of_o his_o body_n it_o be_v no_o good_a consequent_a that_o which_o be_v in_o god_n shall_v be_v every_o where_n as_o god_n himself_o be_v one_o person_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n and_o one_o christ_n jesus_n be_v both_o these_o every_o where_o as_o he_o be_v god_n in_o heaven_n as_o he_o be_v man_n finem_fw-la doubt_v not_o i_o say_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v every_o where_o present_a as_o god_n but_o coeli_fw-la in_o some_o one_o place_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o true_a body_n and_o again_o 30._o let_v we_o give_v the_o same_o ear_n to_o the_o christ._n holy_a gospel_n that_o we_o will_v to_o the_o lord_n himself_o if_o he_o be_v present_a the_o lord_n be_v above_o in_o heaven_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v here_o which_o also_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o body_n in_o which_o he_o rise_v poorest_n β_n can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n â_o his_o truth_n be_v every_o where_o disperse_v do_v not_o vigilius_n a_o bless_a martyr_n and_o bishop_n of_o trident_n uphold_v the_o very_a same_o point_n against_o eutyches_n and_o his_o accurse_a companion_n 4._o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o when_o it_o be_v in_o earth_n sure_o be_v not_o in_o heaven_n and_o now_o because_v it_o be_v in_o heaven_n certain_o it_o be_v not_o in_o earth_n yea_o so_o far_o it_o be_v from_o be_v in_o earth_n that_o we_o look_v for_o christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n to_o come_v from_o heaven_n who_o as_o he_o be_v god_n the_o word_n we_o believe_v to_o be_v with_o we_o in_o earth_n then_o by_o your_o opinion_n either_o the_o word_n be_v comprise_v in_o a_o place_n as_o well_o as_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n or_o heresy_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o together_o with_o the_o word_n see_v one_o nature_n do_v not_o receive_v in_o itself_o any_o different_a and_o contrary_a state_n now_o to_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o place_n and_o to_o be_v present_a in_o every_o place_n be_v thing_n diverse_a and_o very_a dislike_n and_o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o word_n be_v every_o where_o and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n not_o every_o where_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o christ_n be_v of_o both_o nature_n that_o be_v every_o where_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o divinity_n &_o contain_v in_o a_o place_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o humanity_n place_n this_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o confession_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v the_o martyr_n confirm_v and_o the_o faithful_a persist_v in_o to_o this_o day_n do_v not_o fulgentius_n handle_v the_o same_o question_n fall_v and_o precise_o trace_v the_o step_n of_o saint_n augustine_n and_o vigilius_n 5._o one_o and_o the_o same_o son_n of_o god_n have_v in_o he_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n lose_v not_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o true_a godhead_n and_o take_v also_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o true_a manhead_n one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o local_a by_o that_o he_o take_v of_o man_n and_o infinite_a by_o that_o he_o have_v of_o his_o father_n one_o and_o the_o very_a same_o according_a to_o his_o time_n humane_a substance_n absent_a from_o heaven_n when_o he_o be_v in_o earth_n and_o forsake_v the_o earth_n when_o he_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n but_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a and_o infinite_a substance_n neither_o leave_v heaven_n when_o he_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n neither_o depart_n from_o earth_n when_o he_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n the_o which_o may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o most_o certain_a word_n of_o the_o lord_n himself_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n how_o can_v he_o ascend_v but_o as_o a_o man_n local_a and_o true_a man_n or_o how_o can_v he_o be_v present_a with_o the_o faithful_a but_o as_o a_o infinite_a and_o true_a god_n not_o as_o if_o the_o humane_a substance_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v every_o where_o diffund_v but_o because_o one_o and_o the_o same_o son_n of_o god_n albeit_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o manhead_n he_o be_v then_o local_o place_v on_o earth_n yet_o according_a to_o his_o godhead_n which_o in_o no_o wise_a be_v conclude_v in_o any_o place_n he_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n this_o true_a manhead_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v local_a as_o also_o his_o true_a godhead_n which_o be_v always_o infinite_a we_o see_v teach_v by_o the_o doctrine_n apostolical_a many_o for_o that_o paul_n may_v show_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o of_o very_a man_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o place_n he_o say_v to_o the_o thessalonian_o you_o turn_v to_o god_n from_o idol_n to_o serve_v the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n and_o to_o look_v for_o his_o son_n from_o heaven_n declare_v that_o he_o sure_o shall_v corporal_o come_v from_o heaven_n who_o he_o know_v to_o be_v corporal_o raise_v from_o the_o dead_a his_o conclusion_n be_v this_o whereas_o then_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v multilocitie_n prove_v without_o question_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o place_n yet_o his_o godhead_n be_v at_o all_o time_n every_o where_o by_o the_o witness_n of_o paul_n etc._n etc._n these_o be_v no_o wrest_a or_o maim_a allegation_n but_o grave_a and_o advise_v authority_n of_o learned_a and_o ancient_a father_n plain_o conclude_v with_o we_o against_o you_o that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o absent_a only_o from_o earth_n and_o now_o sit_v above_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n but_o also_o local_o contain_v in_o some_o one_o place_n of_o heaven_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n and_o therefore_o not_o disperse_v in_o many_o place_n or_o present_a in_o every_o place_n as_o you_o will_v now_o make_v the_o world_n believe_v it_o be_v in_o your_o mass_n philand_n have_v this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o shape_n but_o not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n for_o saint_n augustine_n say_v 57_o secundum_fw-la hanc_fw-la formam_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la putandus_fw-la ubique_fw-la diffusus_fw-la according_o to_o this_o external_a shape_n and_o form_n we_o must_v not_o think_v he_o every_o where_o diffuse_v and_o yet_o the_o truth_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n theop._n you_o forget_v that_o the_o rest_n say_v nature_n and_o substance_n as_o vigilius_n 4._o circumscribitur_fw-la loco_fw-la per_fw-la naturam_fw-la carnis_fw-la suae_fw-la christ_n be_v circumscribe_v with_o place_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o fulgentius_n regem_fw-la secundum_fw-la humanam_fw-la substantiam_fw-la derelinquens_fw-la terram_fw-la cum_fw-la ascendisset_fw-la in_o coelum_fw-la according_o to_o his_o humane_a substance_n leave_v the_o earth_n when_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o again_o ibidem_fw-la non_fw-la quia_fw-la humana_fw-la christi_fw-la substantia_fw-la fuisset_fw-la ubique_fw-la diffusa_fw-la not_o as_o if_o the_o humane_a substance_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o diffund_v by_o the_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o neither_o the_o form_n nor_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n can_v be_v present_a in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n and_o what_o do_v saint_n augustine_n mean_v by_o the_o word_n form_n but_o the_o perfection_n and_o truth_n of_o man_n nature_n perfection_n as_o ambrose_n leo_n chrysostome_n &_o other_o do_v what_o be_v say_v ambrose_n 47._o in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n in_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n 97._o i_o demand_v say_v leo_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o take_v the_o
form_n of_o a_o servant_n doubtless_o the_o perfection_n of_o man_n nature_n 6._o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n be_v out_o of_o question_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o servant_n say_v chrysostome_n therefore_o augustine_n himself_o add_v this_o reason_n why_o christ_n must_v not_o be_v think_v to_o be_v every_o where_o present_a 57_o ne_fw-la veritatem_fw-la corporis_fw-la auferamus_fw-la lest_o we_o take_v from_o he_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o body_n conclude_v that_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o shape_n per_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la by_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v god_n in_o coelo_fw-la autem_fw-la per_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la homo_fw-la in_o heaven_n by_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v man_n where_o these_o word_n that_o which_o be_v man_n interpret_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o former_a speech_n when_o he_o say_v according_a to_o this_o form_n christ_n be_v not_o every_o where_o present_a but_o let_v the_o word_n be_v take_v in_o your_o sense_n yet_o do_v it_o full_o confirm_v our_o assertion_n for_o humane_a form_n and_o shape_n be_v inseparable_o join_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o christ_n humane_a form_n by_o your_o confession_n can_v not_o be_v present_a in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n ergo_fw-la neither_o his_o humane_a substance_n these_o swain_n shape_n and_o substance_n can_v not_o be_v sever_v he_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v not_o the_o shape_n of_o man_n now_o choose_v whether_o that_o body_n which_o as_o you_o say_v your_o host_n contain_v shall_v keep_v the_o form_n and_o shape_n of_o man_n or_o loose_v the_o nature_n and_o substance_n of_o christ._n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o man_n must_v have_v not_o only_o the_o substance_n but_o also_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o man_n 57_o so_o shall_v he_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v to_o heaven_n that_o be_v say_v austen_n in_o the_o very_a same_o shape_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n 3._o our_o vile_a body_n say_v paul_n shall_v he_o change_v to_o be_v fashion_v like_o to_o his_o glorious_a body_n but_o our_o body_n shall_v then_o have_v distinction_n of_o part_n proportion_n of_o shape_n circumscription_n of_o place_n ergo_fw-la the_o glorify_a body_n of_o christ_n have_v and_o must_v have_v these_o very_a propriety_n of_o our_o nature_n so_o that_o if_o his_o bodily_a shape_n can_v be_v but_o in_o one_o place_n his_o bodily_a substance_n can_v be_v in_o no_o more_o therefore_o say_v fulgentius_n 5._o quod_fw-la siverum_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la loco_fw-la potest_fw-la utique_fw-la contineri_fw-la if_o christ_n have_v a_o true_a body_n that_o no_o doubt_n may_v be_v conclude_v in_o a_o place_n and_o theodoret_n substance_n illud_fw-la enim_fw-la corpus_fw-la habet_fw-la priorem_fw-la formam_fw-la &_o figuram_fw-la &_o circumscriptionem_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la semel_fw-la dicam_fw-la corporis_fw-la substantiam_fw-la that_o body_n which_o christ_n carry_v to_o heaven_n with_o he_o have_v the_o same_o form_n figure_n circumscription_n &_o at_o one_o word_n the_o same_o substance_n of_o a_o body_n which_o it_o have_v before_o phi._n s._n chrysostome_n and_o s._n ambrose_n affirm_v the_o contrary_n theo._n what_o affirm_v they_o phi._n that_o one_o and_o the_o some_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o present_a their_o word_n be_v epist_n quoniâm_fw-la multis_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la offertur_fw-la multi_fw-la christi_fw-la sunt_fw-la âequaquam_fw-la sed_fw-la unus_fw-la ubique_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la &_o hic_fw-la plenus_fw-la existens_fw-la &_o illic_fw-la plenus_fw-la unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la because_o we_o offer_v in_o many_o place_n be_v there_o many_o christ_n no_o by_o no_o mean_n but_o one_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o here_o whole_a and_o there_o whole_a one_o body_z and_o s._n chrysostom_n exceed_o wonder_v at_o so_o miraculous_a a_o presence_n cry_v out_o 3._o o_o the_o strangeness_n of_o the_o thing_n o_o the_o goodness_n of_o our_o god_n he_o that_o sit_v above_o with_o his_o father_n in_o heaven_n at_o the_o very_a moment_n of_o time_n be_v handle_v with_o the_o finger_n of_o all_o man_n theo._n make_v you_o chrysostom_n and_o ambrose_n the_o disciple_n of_o eutyches_n catholic_n phi._n make_v you_o no_o worse_a reckon_n of_o they_o than_o i_o do_v and_o they_o shall_v have_v their_o due_a honour_n theo._n i_o think_v they_o to_o be_v far_o from_o eutyches_n error_n phi._n and_o so_o do_v i._n the._n why_o then_o allege_v you_o their_o word_n for_o that_o erroneous_a position_n which_o be_v condemn_v in_o eutyches_n phi._n i_o allege_v they_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n your_o real_a presence_n and_o ubiquity_n if_o you_o will_v have_v christ_n humane_a substance_n disperse_v in_o many_o place_n without_o shape_n or_o circumscription_n be_v the_o very_a bowel_n and_o inward_n of_o eutyches_n heresy_n phi._n no_o sir_n s._n chrysostom_n and_o s._n ambrose_n be_v no_o heretic_n theo._n in_o deed_n they_o be_v not_o and_o therefore_o you_o do_v they_o the_o more_o wrong_a to_o wrest_v their_o speech_n to_o make_v for_o his_o madness_n philand_n we_o produce_v they_o to_o confirm_v a_o truth_n theophil_n the_o very_a same_o truth_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n abhor_v in_o eutyches_n phi._n what_o do_v the_o church_n abhor_v theo._n even_o this_o which_o you_o will_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o ambrose_n &_o chrysostom_n opinion_n âhat_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o ascension_n be_v not_o local_a nor_o circumscribe_v within_o any_o certain_a place_n phi._n we_o grant_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n be_v local_a and_o circumscribe_v with_o place_n &_o that_o set_v we_o free_a from_o eutyches_n error_n theo._n it_o do_v if_o you_o constant_o keep_v that_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o contradict_v it_o not_o by_o a_o other_o devise_n phi._n we_o very_o believe_v and_o public_o profess_v that_o christ_n humane_a nature_n in_o heaven_n have_v quantity_n shape_n distinction_n of_o part_n circumscription_n and_o all_o other_o condition_n of_o a_o natural_a and_o true_a body_n be_v what_o will_v you_o more_o theo._n we_o will_v no_o more_o but_o if_o you_o fall_v from_o that_o be_v you_o not_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o eutyches_n fury_n phi._n we_o fall_v not_o from_o it_o the._n then_o how_o can_v christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n want_v all_o these_o which_o christian_n religion_n affirm_v to_o be_v permanent_a &_o perpetual_a in_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n or_o why_o will_v you_o collect_v out_o of_o amb._n or_o chry._n against_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o faith_n that_o christ_n humane_a flesh_n be_v uncircumscribed_a and_o every_o where_o diffuse_v philand_n we_o mean_v that_o of_o christ_n flesh_n in_o the_o sacrament_n not_o of_o his_o manhood_n in_o heaven_n theophil_n be_v there_o many_o christ_n philand_n who_o say_v there_o be_v where_n you_o hear_v that_o even_o now_o reprove_v by_o s._n chrysostom_n and_o s._n ambrose_n as_o a_o wicked_a absurdity_n to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o christ_n and_o therefore_o they_o conclude_v there_o be_v but_o one_o christ_n every_o where_o theo._n that_o one_o christ_n have_v he_o many_o natural_a and_o substantial_a body_n philand_n why_o ask_v you_o those_o question_n of_o we_o we_o be_v not_o infect_v with_o any_o such_o frenzy_n theo._n you_o may_v the_o soon_o answer_v have_v christ_n two_o real_a and_o natural_a body_n the_o one_o in_o heaven_n the_o other_o in_o the_o sacrament_n phi._n no_o this_o be_v all_o one_o with_o that_o theo._n that_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o your_o creed_n be_v local_a and_o circumscribe_v if_o this_o be_v the_o same_o how_o can_v this_o be_v without_o quantity_n shape_n and_o circumscription_n phi._n believe_v you_o not_o christ_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n theop._n yea_o very_o but_o you_o so_o expound_v his_o word_n that_o you_o subvert_v the_o whole_a frame_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o our_o common_a faith_n with_o your_o real_a and_o local_a presence_n phi._n do_v we_o subvert_v the_o common_a faith_n with_o our_o opinion_n theo._n our_o christian_a faith_n be_v this_o divinitatis_fw-la we_o must_v believe_v say_v augustine_n the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o deity_n to_o be_v invisible_a incorporal_a and_o uncircumscribed_a but_o according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n to_o be_v visible_a corporal_a and_o local_a you_o hear_v vigilius_n the_o martyr_n say_v 4._o for_o so_o much_o as_o the_o word_n be_v every_o where_o and_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n not_o every_o where_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o one_o and_o the_o same_o christ_n be_v of_o two_o nature_n everiwhere_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o contain_v in_o a_o place_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o humanity_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o confession_n which_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v the_o martyr_n confirm_v &_o
fail_v or_o change_v phi._n it_o that_o we_o believe_v theo._n how_o they_o can_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n or_o how_o can_v it_o in_o any_o place_n or_o time_n be_v without_o shape_n quantity_n circumscription_n and_o such_o like_a propriety_n of_o man_n nature_n phi._n in_o heaven_n it_o have_v they_o theo._n if_o they_o can_v not_o be_v change_v or_o alter_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n must_v have_v they_o not_o in_o heaven_n only_o but_o in_o earth_n also_o &_o in_o every_o place_n where_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n be_v philand_n listen_v save_o in_o the_o sacrament_n theophi_fw-la if_o that_o be_v the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n it_o must_v have_v the_o same_o natural_a propriety_n of_o a_o body_n which_o that_o have_v phi._n it_o have_v as_o many_o as_o it_o may_v theo._n it_o must_v have_v as_o many_o as_o it_o shall_v phi._n which_o be_v they_o theo._n proportion_n of_o shape_n distinction_n of_o part_n extension_n of_o quantity_n circumscription_n of_o place_n and_o the_o very_a same_o substance_n of_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v of_o his_o mother_n marie_n phi._n you_o name_v these_o thing_n which_o you_o see_v be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n theophi_fw-la i_o name_v those_o which_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n must_v have_v wheresoever_o it_o be_v phi._n must_v have_v what_o necessity_n be_v in_o that_o theo._n as_o much_o as_o the_o deny_v of_o your_o faith_n &_o contradict_v of_o his_o truth_n for_o these_o propriety_n the_o body_n have_v that_o hang_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o without_o these_o he_o can_v be_v no_o true_a man_n philan._n in_o heaven_n we_o tell_v you_o he_o have_v they_o theophil_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n we_o tell_v you_o âee_z have_v they_o not_o ergo_fw-la the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n phi._n faith_n can_v christ_n be_v where_o he_o listen_v without_o those_o consequent_n theo._n his_o body_n can_v not_o phi._n do_v not_o you_o now_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v omnipotent_a theophi_fw-la do_v not_o you_o now_o allege_v his_o power_n to_o frustrate_v both_o his_o will_n and_o your_o faith_n philand_n you_o hold_v christ_n can_v if_o he_o will_v theo._n we_o say_v christ_n will_v not_o though_o he_o can_v and_o since_o his_o will_n be_v evident_a by_o his_o word_n as_o our_o common_a faith_n avouch_v you_o do_v wicked_o to_o cross_v his_o will_n with_o his_o power_n and_o make_v his_o might_n attendant_n on_o your_o folly_n praeâeam_v dei_fw-la velle_fw-la posse_fw-la est_fw-la &_o non_fw-la posse_fw-la nolle_fw-la the_o power_n of_o god_n which_o we_o must_v stand_v on_o be_v his_o will_n and_o that_o which_o he_o will_v not_o that_o he_o can_v you_o must_v not_o therefore_o imagine_v what_o you_o listen_v and_o then_o ground_n upon_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o god_n it_o be_v error_n and_o impiety_n whatsoever_o be_v repugnant_a to_o his_o truth_n and_o to_o father_n your_o falsehoode_n on_o his_o almighty_a power_n be_v irreverent_a and_o insolent_a blasphemy_n phi._n you_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o confess_v that_o he_o can_v do_v it_o and_o that_o cause_v we_o to_o suspect_v you_o doubt_v of_o god_n omnipotency_n theo._n because_o we_o suffer_v you_o not_o to_o unload_v your_o absurdity_n and_o impiety_n on_o god_n power_n at_o your_o pleasure_n impossibility_n philand_n first_o grant_v he_o can_v do_v it_o and_o of_o that_o we_o will_v commune_v afterward_o theo._n what_o shall_v i_o grant_v phi._n that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o corporal_a presence_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o time_n if_o it_o please_v he_o theo._n what_o then_o shall_v become_v of_o s._n austen_n that_o say_v christ_n 11._o can_v not_o concern_v his_o corporal_a presence_n be_v at_o one_o time_n in_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o moon_n and_o on_o the_o cross_n and_o of_o s._n cyril_n affirm_v that_o christ_n time_n can_v not_o be_v conversant_a with_o his_o apostle_n after_o he_o once_o ascend_v if_o he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o three_o place_n at_o one_o time_n how_o can_v he_o be_v in_o more_o if_o not_o in_o earth_n when_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n how_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n as_o you_o yourselves_o conceive_v and_o will_v have_v we_o confess_v and_o yet_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o withstand_v be_v far_o more_o impossible_a than_o this_o for_o the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n have_v and_o must_v have_v after_o his_o ascension_n humane_a shape_n part_n length_n breadth_n both_o extend_v &_o circumscribe_v and_o otherwise_o to_o think_v be_v the_o wicked_a and_o curse_a opinion_n of_o eutyches_n condemn_v long_o since_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o a_o mere_a impiety_n you_o to_o avoid_v the_o burden_n of_o that_o sentence_n confess_v these_o property_n be_v &_o must_v be_v permanent_a in_o the_o body_z which_o our_o saviour_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n &_o wherein_o he_o now_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n his_o father_n do_v marry_o the_o selfsame_o body_n you_o defend_v to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n without_o shape_n part_n length_n or_o breadth_n either_o extend_v or_o circumscribe_v which_o be_v we_o say_v simple_o impossible_a for_o shape_v not_o shape_v extend_v not_o extend_v circumscribe_v not_o circumscribe_v be_v plain_a contradiction_n &_o those_o of_o one_o thing_n at_o one_o time_n be_v not_o possible_a phi._n be_v any_o thing_n impossible_a to_o god_n 2._o theo._n do_v not_o the_o apostle_n say_v 6._o 10._o negare_fw-la seipsum_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la god_n can_v deny_v himself_o &_o impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la deum_fw-la mentiri_fw-la it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v s._n austen_n well_o note_v dicitur_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la faciendo_fw-la quod_fw-la vult_fw-la non_fw-la patiendo_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la vult_fw-la unde_fw-la propterea_fw-la quaedam_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la quia_fw-la est_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v omnipotent_a in_o do_v that_o he_o will_v not_o in_o suffer_v that_o he_o will_v not_o and_o therefore_o can_v he_o not_o do_v some_o thing_n because_o he_o be_v omnipotent_a and_o s._n ambrose_n likewise_o 37._o quid_fw-la ergo_fw-la ei_fw-la impossibile_fw-it non_fw-la quod_fw-la virtuti_fw-la arduum_fw-la sed_fw-la quod_fw-la naturae_fw-la eius_fw-la contrarium_fw-la what_o then_o be_v impossible_a to_o god_n not_o that_o which_o pass_v his_o power_n but_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o nature_n ibidem_fw-la impossibile_fw-it istud_fw-la non_fw-la infirmitatis_fw-la sed_fw-la virtutis_fw-la &_o maiestatis_fw-la quia_fw-la veritas_fw-la non_fw-la recipit_fw-la mendacium_fw-la nec_fw-la dei_fw-la virtus_fw-la levitatis_fw-la errorem_fw-la this_o impossibility_n proceed_v not_o of_o infirmity_n why_o but_o of_o might_n and_o majesty_n because_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n admit_v not_o a_o lie_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n any_o note_n of_o inconstancy_n so_o that_o all_o change_n against_o his_o nature_n or_o falsehood_n against_o his_o truth_n be_v utter_o impossible_a to_o god_n and_o that_o because_o he_o be_v almighty_a phi._n god_n that_o we_o know_v theo._n then_o this_o also_o you_o must_v needs_o know_v that_o contradiction_n be_v impossible_a for_o of_o they_o if_o one_o part_n be_v true_a the_o other_o be_v ever_o false_a and_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v false_a it_o be_v not_o possible_a you_o must_v therefore_o either_o with_o eutyches_n affirm_v the_o manhood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v change_v from_o his_o former_a shape_n part_n quantity_n and_o circumscription_n and_o consequent_o from_o his_o former_a substance_n or_o else_o against_o religion_n and_o learning_n reason_n and_o sense_n defend_v contradiction_n that_o be_v truth_n and_o falsehood_n to_o be_v possible_a both_o at_o one_o time_n god_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o to_o make_v god_n a_o liar_n in_o his_o work_n as_o you_o be_v in_o your_o word_n for_o maintain_v that_o error_n phi._n at_o diverse_a time_n and_o in_o ãâ¦ã_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a theo._n there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o part_n ãâ¦ã_o other_o at_o the_o same_o instant_n be_v inevitablie_o false_a and_o as_o for_o your_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o propriety_n of_o christ_n body_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o be_v absolute_a and_o inherent_a necessity_n no_o relation_n nor_o comparison_n you_o may_v keep_v they_o for_o some_o better_a âart_n in_o this_o assertion_n they_o will_v do_v you_o no_o service_n place_n phi._n what_o if_o we_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n have_v the_o same_o proportion_n of_o shape_n extension_n of_o part_n and_o circumscription_n of_o place_n which_o it_o have_v in_o heaven_n how_o can_v you_o refel_v we_o theo._n never_o take_v the_o paiâes_n to_o incur_v new_a contradiction_n a_o short_a answer_n will_v serve_v you_o for_o all_o and_o that_o be_v say_v you_o believe_v you_o can_v tell_v what_o for_o otherwise_o man_n
word_n as_o by_o his_o sacrament_n sacrament_n hier._n in_o psal._n 147._o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v eat_v more_o true_o in_o his_o word_n than_o in_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n de_fw-fr cons._n do_v 2._o §_o ut_fw-la quid_fw-la paras_fw-la august_n de_fw-fr civi_fw-la ãâã_d 21._o ca._n 25._o no_o such_o word_n be_v find_v in_o chrysostoms_n liturgy_n the_o word_n may_v be_v there_o &_o yet_o not_o speak_v to_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n pag._n 21._o l._n n._n 12_o pag._n 463._o lin_v 11._o 11._o pa._n 452._o li._n 30._o the_o jesuite_n bid_v we_o see_v the_o father_n but_o they_o do_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o we_o shall_v find_v there_o it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o will_v we_o to_o see_v the_o father_n they_o must_v say_v to_o what_o end_n they_o allege_v they_o chrysostome_n pray_v to_o christ_n in_o heaven_n not_o to_o the_o sacrament_n sacrament_n liturg_n chrys._n ibidem_fw-la he_o will_v have_v christ_n behold_v the_o people_n from_o heaven_n not_o from_o the_o sacrament_n mat._n 18._o mat._n 28._o how_o christ_n be_v present_a with_o us._n august_n in_o johan_n tract_n 50._o his_o divinity_n be_v present_a with_o us._n idem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la his_o humanity_n present_a with_o we_o many_o way_n though_o not_o in_o substance_n the_o rhe._n test_n pag._n 453._o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v exact_o distinguish_v the_o sacrament_n from_o christ._n christ._n de_fw-fr catech._n rudibus_fw-la cap._n 26._o 26._o de_fw-fr baptis_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 10._o 10._o ambr._n de_fw-fr sacrament_n li._n 4._o cap._n 3._o 3._o orig._n in_o 15._o matt._n the_o whole_a church_n cry_v on_o the_o people_n to_o lift_v up_o their_o heart_n heart_n council_n nice_n nice_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d signify_v in_o as_o well_o as_o on_o on_o august_n in_o johan_n tract_n 50._o christ_n be_v both_o see_v and_o touch_v by_o faith_n faith_n ambr._n in_o luc._n li._n 6._o ca._n 8._o de_fw-la filia_fw-la princ_fw-la synag_fw-mi vesiââci_fw-la vesiââci_fw-la chrys._n in_o 1._o cor._n hom_n 24._o 24._o ibidem_fw-la christ_n be_v on_o the_o table_n because_o his_o death_n be_v solemnize_v in_o the_o mystery_n on_o the_o table_n table_n colos._n 3_o 3_o phil._n 3._o theod._n dial_n 2._o not_o one_o of_o the_o father_n which_o they_o bring_v speak_v of_o the_o external_a sacrament_n save_o only_a theodoret_n the_o mystical_a sign_n must_v be_v adore_v but_o not_o with_o divine_a honour_n these_o man_n can_v play_v with_o shadow_n very_o pretty_o the_o mystical_a token_n remain_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n must_v be_v adore_v theod._n dial._n 2._o if_o they_o will_v adore_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n theodoret_n word_n will_v help_v they_o forward_o but_o not_o otherwise_o adore_v be_v sometime_o as_o much_o as_o âeveâenced_v de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 3._o §_o venerabiles_fw-la in_o glossa_fw-la ¶_o cultu_fw-la the_o jesuit_n authority_n for_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n prove_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n do_v not_o infer_v the_o real_a presence_n not_o the_o word_n but_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o strive_v for_o the_o jesuite_n may_v soon_o bring_v a_o thousand_o authority_n for_o this_o point_n and_o not_o one_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o papist_n in_o this_o question_n think_v to_o conquer_v with_o number_n if_o not_o with_o strength_n of_o place_n the_o papist_n beap_v up_o place_n for_o their_o real_a presence_n by_o hundreth_n &_o not_o one_o to_o the_o purpose_n it_o be_v more_o wisdom_n for_o they_o to_o understand_v what_o they_o allege_v than_o to_o allege_v they_o know_v not_o what_o we_o strive_v not_o for_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o mystery_n but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n the_o presence_n which_o the_o jesuit_n hold_v the_o father_n never_o heaâd_v of_o garetius_n vernierus_n and_o the_o rest_n if_o a_o father_n do_v but_o name_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n bring_v he_o in_o by_o and_o by_o for_o a_o witness_n on_o their_o side_n and_o then_o they_o muster_v they_o by_o hundreth_n hundreth_n you_o turn_v all_o fââm_n the_o thing_n themselves_o to_o the_o sign_n &_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o your_o error_n error_n psalm_n 64._o 64._o jerem._n 18._o wisd._n 1._o these_o too_o rule_n must_v be_v observe_v in_o read_v the_o father_n touch_v this_o matter_n else_o we_o shall_v infinite_o err_v to_o mistake_v the_o sign_n for_o the_o thing_n themselves_o must_v needs_o bread_n a_o monstrous_a error_n aâl_o their_o allegaââns_n be_v answer_v with_o theâe_n two_o observation_n the_o literal_a press_v of_o those_o word_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o alâ_n their_o error_n christ_n do_v make_v the_o bread_n a_o god_n but_o add_v grace_n to_o the_o sign_n that_o it_o may_v become_v a_o sacrament_n if_o bread_n be_v not_o make_v the_o son_n oâ_n god_n then_o sure_a the_o bread_n be_v not_o make_v christ._n if_o the_o bread_n be_v christ_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v make_v christ_n for_o before_o it_o be_v not_o christ._n christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v change_v for_o or_o with_o my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n if_o the_o bread_n be_v christ_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v god_n for_o he_o be_v god_n this_o in_o christ_n word_n must_v needs_o note_v somewhat_o this_o must_v be_v this_o somewhat_o and_o not_o this_o nothing_o the_o jesuit_n be_v loath_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o this_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n this_o indeed_o be_v the_o right_n literal_a sense_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n and_o since_o that_o be_v apparent_o false_a the_o figurative_a sense_n must_v take_v place_n matth._n 26._o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o gospel_n reâerreth_v this_o to_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o word_n of_o christ._n this_o of_o itself_o infer_v nothing_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v guide_v by_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n text_n 1._o cor._n 11._o 11._o 1._o cor._n 10._o 10._o 1._o cor._n 11._o saint_n paul_n in_o plain_a speech_n joinethâ_n this_o to_o the_o bread_n al_n the_o father_n refer_v this_o to_o the_o bread_n bread_n iust._n apol._n 2._o 2._o tertul._n adver_v jedaeos_fw-la jedaeos_fw-la idem_fw-la li._n 4._o contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la marcionem_fw-la de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o §_o qui_fw-fr manducas_fw-la manducas_fw-la cypr._n de_fw-fr unctio_fw-la chrismat_n chrismat_n iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 34._o 34._o idem_fw-la li._n 4._o c._n 57_o 57_o hier._n ad_fw-la hedibiam_fw-la quaest_a 2._o 2._o athan_n in_o 1._o cor._n cap._n 11._o 11._o epiph._n in_o anchorato_n anchorato_n cyril_n catechis_fw-la mystag_n 4._o 4._o theod._n âial_a â_o the_o jesuite_n lose_v all_o hope_n of_o their_o transubstantiation_n if_o this_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o note_v the_o bread_n bread_n de_fw-fr canâ_n disâ_n 2._o §_o it_o benedictioâeâ_n glâssa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la gerson_n contr_n floretum_n li._n 4._o 4._o gard._n contra_fw-la diabolic_n sophist_n sophist_n in_o his_o marc._n antoni_fw-la consr._n consr._n occam_fw-la in_o 4._o sântent_n do_v 13._o 13._o de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o §_o timârem_fw-la glossa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la then_o have_v the_o jesuit_n small_a hold_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n for_o their_o transubstantiation_n that_o this_o be_v the_o right_a purport_n of_o christ_n word_n it_o can_v be_v doubt_v so_o long_o as_o the_o letter_n be_v true_a we_o may_v not_o fly_v to_o figure_n but_o if_o that_o be_v false_a we_o kill_v our_o soul_n except_o we_o âlie_v to_o figure_n figure_n aug._n the_o dââtr_n christiana_n lib._n 3_o cap._n 10._o when_o the_o speech_n must_v be_v figurative_a the_o literal_a coherence_n of_o these_o word_n this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n be_v impossible_a blasphemous_a and_o barbarous_a to_o reproove_v the_o misconsterer_n be_v to_o reverence_v the_o speaker_n speaker_n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o §_o panis_fw-la est_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la glossa_fw-la ibidem_fw-la not_o possible_a by_o their_o own_o confession_n that_o bread_n shall_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n to_o say_v that_o bread_n be_v christ_n in_o proper_a speech_n be_v horrible_a blasphemy_n to_o eat_v flesh_n in_o proper_a speech_n be_v against_o nature_n and_o far_o from_o all_o piety_n piety_n august_n contra_fw-la advers._n legis_fw-la &_o propheta_fw-la lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o 9_o idem_fw-la contra_fw-la eundem_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 14._o 14._o cyril_n in_o johan._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 22._o 22._o august_n de_fw-fr doctr_n christ._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 16._o to_o eat_v flesh_n be_v a_o heinous_a act_n ergo_fw-la christ_n word_n be_v figurative_a this_o be_v s._n austin_n reason_n if_o the_o jesuite_n can_v reâure_v he_o let_v they_o where_o christ_n say_v this_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n the_o jesuit_n say_v this_o must_v be_v no_o bread_n before_o it_o can_v be_v my_o body_n it_o be_v as_o great_a blasphemy_n for_o the_o bread_n to_o be_v turn_v into_o christ_n as_o to_o be_v christ._n
meaning_n be_v plain_a as_o shall_v appear_v when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o drift_n of_o their_o conclusion_n never_o catholic_a father_n say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v abolish_v by_o consecration_n as_o the_o jesuit_n say_v if_o the_o sign_n bâaâe_o tâe_v nâmes_n of_o the_o thing_n themseluââ_n âhen_o the_o leâââs_a authority_n be_v unsufficient_a to_o conclude_v thât_v chââst_o be_v eat_v wiâh_v our_o tooth_n we_o must_v ascend_v to_o heauân_v before_o we_o eat_v christ_n which_o with_o our_o mouth_n we_o can_v if_o the_o father_n of_o ââne_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o eat_v wâth_a tooth_n as_o they_o do_v âhen_o these_o place_n must_v be_v ânderstood_v of_o âhe_n sign_n and_o noâ_n of_o the_o thââgs_n themselves_o as_o many_o as_o theâe_n be_v âââes_n in_o the_o ball_n of_o my_o eye_n ãâ¦ã_o â18_n â18_n ãâ¦ã_o 23._o &_o ãâã_d a_o âdimant_n cap._n 12._o 12._o ãâ¦ã_o 29._o ãâã_d 2_o cor._n cor._n idââ_n aâ_n câsar_n mânach_n mânach_n mânach_n idââ_n contra_fw-la ãâã_d lâb_fw-la 4._o the_o jesuit_n hâue_v no_o hold_n in_o these_o âathers_n but_o only_o because_o they_o call_v they_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v as_o common_a with_o they_o as_o sand_n with_o the_o sea_n sea_n cyriâl_n lib_n 4._o cap._n 14._o in_o iâh_n by_o cognato_fw-la tactic_a ãâ¦ã_o &_o ciâo_o cyâil_n mean_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n &_o nât_v of_o christ_n body_n body_n de_fw-fr censâârât_fw-fr âist_v §_o 2._o quid_fw-la sit_fw-la sit_fw-la as_o ââough_v in_o strict_a and_o ãâ¦ã_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v drink_v both_o by_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o body_n body_n de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o ¶_o species_n in_a hom_n pascha_fw-la pascha_fw-la âeo_fw-la de_fw-la ieiunio_fw-la 7._o mensis_fw-la sermo_fw-la 6._o 6._o leoes_n word_n examine_v examine_v but_o eutiche_n against_o who_o leo_n speak_v imagine_v that_o christ_n body_n have_v neither_o shape_n quantity_n nor_o circumscription_n and_o so_o do_v the_o jesuite_n dream_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o leo_n refel_v eutiche_n he_o must_v also_o refel_v the_o jesuit_n for_o they_o spoil_v christ_n of_o the_o natural_a condition_n of_o a_o body_n as_o eutiche_n do_v by_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v evident_a in_o what_o sense_n theodoret_n &_o gelasius_n use_v the_o word_n substance_n when_o they_o say_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v the_o jesuite_n reject_v the_o mayor_n minor_fw-la &_o conclusion_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o euâiches_n be_v they_o not_o then_o quarter_v master_n in_o his_o ship_n gelas._n contra_fw-la eutich_n if_o christ_n consist_v of_o two_o substance_n divine_a and_o humane_a the_o sacrament_n likewise_o consist_v of_o two_o substance_n a_o heavenly_a and_o a_o earthly_a theod._n dialog_n 2._o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v transsubstantiate_v so_o must_v the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n be_v likewise_o change_v theodoret_n conclusion_n against_o eutâches_n theod._n dial_n 2._o if_o christ_n humane_a nature_n in_o heaven_n keep_v his_o former_a substance_n so_o do_v the_o bread_n which_o be_v a_o image_n of_o that_o mystery_n both_o their_o seminary_n can_v answer_v this_o argument_n but_o by_o condemn_v gelasâus_a and_o theodoret_n foâ_n heretic_n or_o at_o least_o themselves_o de_fw-fr consecrat_fw-mi distinct_a 2._o &_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la dico_fw-la therâ_n must_v be_v two_o different_a substance_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o peâson_n of_o christ._n leoes_n word_n wârâ_n intend_v against_o the_o eutichian_o hoc_fw-la do_v not_o signify_v the_o self_n same_o body_n but_o the_o selfsame_o pointeâ_n of_o âaith_n or_o proportion_n of_o the_o image_n and_o the_o original_n the_o real_a presence_n have_v be_v the_o next_o way_n to_o help_v eutiches_n error_n the_o substance_n of_o it_o you_o affirm_v in_o word_n but_o you_o spoil_v ât_z of_o all_o natural_a shape_n quantity_n and_o circumscription_n christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v even_o such_o a_o body_n as_o eutiche_n do_v imagine_v leo_n do_v not_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v enclose_v in_o the_o host_n but_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o of_o christ_n body_n in_o heaven_n which_o they_o see_v in_o the_o element_n receive_v with_o their_o moutheâ_n to_o wit_n the_o perfect_a continuance_n of_o their_o former_a substance_n we_o do_v not_o interpret_v the_o father_n as_o please_v we_o but_o we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o subvert_v not_o their_o main_a doctrine_n by_o some_o of_o their_o phrase_n which_o by_o their_o own_o rule_n may_v be_v revoke_v to_o a_o good_a sense_n sense_n if_o this_o be_v not_o lawful_a in_o expound_v the_o father_n i_o marvel_v what_o be_v you_o be_v angry_a because_o the_o father_n do_v not_o serve_v your_o folly_n no_o better_o it_o can_v be_v now_o mistake_v they_o have_v so_o often_o be_v tell_v of_o thâir_a error_n &_o they_o still_o deferâd_v it_o as_o they_o do_v before_o vide_fw-la supra_fw-la fol._n 760._o this_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o ergo_fw-la the_o jesuitâs_n place_n must_v be_v mean_v of_o thâ_n sign_n call_v by_o âhe_n name_n of_o chrâsts_n body_n and_o blood_n âr_o elâe_v there_o be_v a_o manife_a contradiction_n in_o the_o father_n weâe_n we_o not_o wise_o occupy_v to_o follow_v the_o jesuit_n in_o this_o pointâ_n eat_v be_v in_o vain_a without_o nourish_v if_o then_o christ_n flesh_n do_v enter_v our_o mouth_n it_o must_v nourish_v our_o body_n body_n we_o will_v not_o have_v it_o so_o but_o if_o you_o understand_v the_o father_n when_o they_o say_v the_o one_o why_o do_v you_o pervert_v they_o in_o the_o other_o other_o iust._n apol._n 2._o 2._o iren._n lib._n 4._o cap._n 34._o 34._o idem_fw-la lib._n 5._o 5._o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la so_o cyprian_n say_v panis_fw-la in_o carnem_fw-la &_o sanguine_v mutatus_fw-la ãâã_d vitam_fw-la &_o increâentum_fw-la corporiety_n a_o man_n will_v think_v this_o be_v plain_a enough_o for_o far_o young_a scholar_n than_o the_o jesuite_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v our_o resurrection_n do_v not_o depend_v upon_o the_o touch_n of_o christ_n flesh_n with_o tooth_n for_o then_o the_o wicked_a shall_v âise_v to_o eternal_a life_n council_n nicen._n 1._o 1._o hom._n 45._o in_o johannem_fw-la johannem_fw-la chrysost._n hom_n 45._o in_o johan._n as_o christ_n be_v see_v &_o touch_v so_o be_v he_o eat_v and_o digest_v both_o these_o speech_n the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n enter_v our_o mouth_n and_o increase_v the_o substance_n oâ_n our_o flesh_n have_v oâe_n and_o the_o selfsame_o construction_n ambros._n in_o 9_o lucae_n li._n 6._o §_o &_o ãâã_d vir_fw-la cvi_fw-la nomen_fw-la jairus_n jairus_n idem_fw-la in_o precatiâ_n praeparant_fw-la ad_fw-la mâssaââ_n mâssaââ_n cypr._n de_fw-fr caena_fw-la domini_fw-la that_o eat_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o we_o teach_v the_o church_n hold_v for_o a_o 1000_o year_n they_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v on_o among_o themselves_o what_o manner_n of_o eat_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o father_n teach_v teach_v origen_n tract_n 35._o in_o 26._o mat._n mat._n idem_fw-la in_o levit._n hom_n 9_o 9_o idem_fw-la tract_n 35._o in_o 26._o mat._n mat._n athana_n in_o illud_fw-la quicunque_fw-la dixerit_fw-la verbum_fw-la verbum_fw-la not_o corporal_o lodge_v in_o the_o stomach_n but_o spiritual_o distribute_v to_o your_o soul_n soul_n cypr._n de_fw-fr caena_fw-la domini_fw-la this_o nourishment_n be_v proper_a to_o the_o spirit_n ergo_fw-la not_o common_a to_o the_o body_n body_n ambros._n in_o oratio_fw-la praeparan_a ad_fw-la missam_fw-la 1._o how_o happen_v s._n ambrose_n have_v quite_o forget_v his_o mouth_n and_o his_o jaw_n in_o all_o this_o long_a prayer_n before_o his_o approach_n to_o the_o mystery_n mystery_n aug._n in_o psal_n 103._o 103._o not_o the_o stomach_n nor_o the_o belly_n belly_n idem_fw-la tract_n 26._o in_o johan._n johan._n the_o body_n be_v not_o regenerate_v the_o body_n therefore_o be_v not_o feed_v with_o the_o true_a flesh_n of_o christ._n christ._n idem_fw-la in_o serm_n de_fw-fr corp_n &_o saâguine_fw-la domini_fw-la ciââtur_fw-la à _fw-la beda_n in_o 1._o cor_fw-la ca._n 10._o 10._o aâst_n in_o serm_n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la euangelij_fw-la citatur_fw-la à _fw-la beda_n ibidem_fw-la idem_fw-la in_o euang_n luc._n serm_n 33._o 33._o macar_n ho._n 27._o euseb._n emissenus_fw-la de_fw-fr cons_n do_v 2._o ¶_o quia_fw-la corpus_fw-la corpus_fw-la not_o with_o the_o hand_n of_o thy_o body_n body_n what_o shall_v the_o mouth_n have_v if_o the_o inward_a man_n must_v swallow_v the_o whole_a whole_a bertram_n de_fw-fr corpor_fw-la &_o sing_v domini_fw-la domini_fw-la not_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_n subject_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n then_o be_v neither_o press_v with_o tooth_n nor_o break_a in_o piece_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la paschas_fw-la de_fw-fr corp_n &_o sing_v domini_fw-la ca._n 9_o 9_o cap._n 11._o 11._o cap._n 12._o 12._o cap._n 14._o 14._o do_v the_o angel_n eat_v flesh_n
pain_n and_o to_o make_v a_o ready_a dispatch_n if_o you_o will_v be_v rule_v by_o i_o phi._n what_o be_v it_o theo._n bring_v we_o but_o one_o father_n for_o 800._o year_n that_o ever_o teach_v your_o transubstantiation_n and_o we_o will_v count_v it_o catholic_a phi._n what_o talk_v you_o of_o one_o you_o shall_v have_v one_o hundred_o of_o as_o ancient_a and_o catholic_a writer_n as_o any_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o his_o ascend_n to_o heaven_n theo._n you_o be_v best_o take_v it_o when_o you_o be_v well_o offer_v one_o fair_a and_o sufficient_a authority_n shall_v please_v we_o better_o than_o a_o cartloade_v of_o name_n abuse_v and_o place_n pervert_v phi._n it_o be_v as_o easy_a for_o we_o to_o bring_v they_o by_o whole_a hundred_o a_o man_n that_o once_o supply_v the_o same_o room_n which_o you_o do_v now_o place_n have_v produce_v two_o hundred_o of_o they_o in_o his_o diacosion_n martyrion_n vernierus_n a_o other_o of_o our_o side_n have_v allege_v 318._o several_a and_o sundry_a writer_n as_o many_o as_o there_o be_v bishop_n in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a garetius_n a_o man_n of_o singular_a read_n have_v gather_v four_o hundred_o forty_o five_o good_a and_o substantial_a author_n even_o from_o melchizedech_n to_o this_o present_a age_n beside_o poet_n woman_n counsel_n miracle_n vision_n jew_n ethnic_n and_o heretic_n which_o all_o bear_v witness_n to_o our_o doctrine_n and_o if_o you_o have_v not_o see_v the_o book_n i_o will_v lend_v you_o they_o for_o your_o instruction_n i_o can_v be_v content_a i_o tell_v you_o to_o be_v at_o any_o cost_n to_o win_v a_o soul_n and_o wish_v to_o you_o no_o worse_o than_o to_o myself_o theo._n your_o kindness_n without_o cause_n be_v but_o service_n without_o thanks_n i_o have_v see_v your_o diacosion_n martyrion_n your_o great_a &_o universal_a council_n militant_a touch_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o most_o divine_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n assemble_v by_o vernierus_n &_o your_o nine_o order_n &_o rank_n of_o i_o know_v not_o who_o digest_v by_o garetius_n beside_o the_o labour_n &_o travel_n of_o many_o other_o your_o adherent_n purpose_n and_o read_v they_o all_o i_o find_v not_o one_o father_n that_o ever_o dream_v of_o your_o material_a &_o corporal_a conversion_n of_o the_o element_n into_o christ_n for_o 800._o year_n &_o upward_o hyperbolical_a speech_n i_o find_v in_o chrysostom_n &_o some_o hard_a similitude_n in_o damascene_fw-la &_o other_o but_o a_o manifest_a testimony_n for_o the_o real_a &_o carnal_a presence_n which_o you_o defend_v i_o find_v none_o and_o as_o for_o the_o father_n which_o be_v any_o thing_n ancient_a they_o go_v clear_o and_o exact_o with_o we_o in_o this_o question_n phi._n with_o you_o by_o this_o a_o man_n may_v perceive_v you_o never_o see_v they_o or_o at_o lest_o never_o read_v they_o myself_o can_v allege_v you_o 500_o place_n whereof_o you_o shall_v not_o answer_v one_o what_o but_o by_o mere_a shift_n &_o jest_n &_o of_o trope_n and_o figure_n and_o such_o like_a mockery_n theo._n it_o be_v pain_n better_o bestow_v for_o you_o to_o understand_v what_o you_o allege_v than_o to_o allege_v that_o which_o you_o understand_v not_o you_o may_v wrest_v and_o misuse_v 500_o place_n of_o the_o father_n as_o your_o friend_n before_o you_o have_v do_v in_o this_o point_n &_o yourselves_o in_o other_o question_n have_v show_v the_o like_a activity_n but_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n vanish_v by_o consecration_n &_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n real_o succeed_v under_o the_o same_o dimension_n &_o accident_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n &_o enter_v our_o mouth_n local_o comprise_v within_o those_o form_n for_o this_o you_o shall_v never_o show_v we_o any_o one_o father_n greek_a or_o latin_a within_o the_o compass_n of_o 800._o year_n after_o christ._n phi._n a_o thousand_o authority_n can_v we_o bring_v you_o with_o a_o wet_a finger_n that_o shall_v clear_o convince_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n theo._n and_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v conclude_v that_o manner_n of_o presence_n which_o you_o maintain_v presence_n phi._n as_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o be_v there_o it_o force_v not_o much_o so_o you_o grant_v he_o to_o be_v real_o and_o very_o present_a theo._n his_o presence_n there_o can_v do_v you_o little_a good_a except_o the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n be_v likewise_o express_v and_o avouch_v by_o the_o place_n which_o you_o will_v bring_v phi._n if_o he_o be_v present_a ergo_fw-la the_o substance_n of_o his_o flesh_n be_v present_a and_o that_o must_v needs_o be_v corporal_o &_o local_o comprise_v in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n &_o wine_n theo._n what_o father_n say_v so_o beside_o yourselves_o phi._n they_o all_o say_v he_o be_v present_a theo._n and_o so_o do_v we_o phi._n in_o word_n you_o say_v it_o but_o when_o you_o come_v to_o the_o push_n you_o deny_v the_o truth_n and_o effect_n of_o his_o presence_n of_o theo._n we_o do_v not_o look_v you_o shall_v understand_v we_o that_o understand_v not_o yourselves_o you_o have_v frame_v of_o your_o own_o head_n a_o certain_a manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o supper_n without_o the_o direction_n or_o consent_n of_o any_o learned_a or_o ancient_a father_n and_o that_o of_o all_o other_o the_o gross_a and_o absurde_a that_o can_v be_v devise_v and_o now_o you_o no_o soon_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n body_n or_o blood_n in_o the_o mystery_n hundreth_n but_o you_o straightway_o grow_v to_o a_o special_a conceit_n that_o your_o real_a and_o carnal_a presence_n be_v there_o confirm_v and_o confess_v and_o this_o make_v your_o builder_n of_o babel_n as_o they_o post_v through_o the_o father_n to_o note_v every_o place_n and_o person_n that_o do_v but_o mention_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o witness_n for_o transubstantiation_n where_o if_o it_o will_v have_v please_v you_o and_o your_o fellow_n to_o have_v weigh_v the_o rule_n and_o caution_n of_o the_o father_n together_o with_o their_o speech_n and_o exhortation_n &_o not_o to_o have_v hunt_v after_o your_o own_o fancy_n in_o their_o phrase_n but_o mark_v &_o remember_v their_o instruction_n how_o they_o will_v be_v take_v &_o understand_v when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_n mystery_n you_o shall_v have_v save_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o labour_n which_o now_o you_o shall_v have_v save_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o labour_n which_o now_o you_o have_v spend_v to_o no_o purpose_n &_o gain_v security_n from_o this_o difficulty_n which_o have_v sot_v your_o school_n and_o church_n with_o a_o most_o pernicious_a and_o yet_o a_o monstrous_a error_n phi._n and_o we_o say_v that_o you_o be_v so_o blind_v with_o presumption_n and_o rebellion_n against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o you_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o all_o the_o father_n that_o ever_o write_v of_o this_o matter_n since_o christ_n time_n but_o because_o they_o now_o and_o then_o speak_v of_o sign_n and_o figure_n you_o error_n turn_v all_o to_o trope_n and_o metaphor_n as_o if_o neither_o christ_n himself_o nor_o any_o of_o his_o apostle_n or_o their_o successor_n the_o godly_a teacher_n and_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n have_v ever_o speak_v proper_o or_o plain_o of_o this_o sacrament_n but_o all_o in_o cloud_n and_o riddle_n such_o as_o neither_o priest_n nor_o people_n that_o shall_v come_v after_o can_v possible_o conceive_v and_o none_o to_o this_o day_n have_v understand_v till_o you_o come_v late_o to_o trouble_v the_o world_n with_o heresy_n and_o iniquity_n theo._n take_v your_o pleasure_n your_o tongue_n be_v your_o own_o who_o can_v tame_v they_o if_o you_o will_v not_o contain_v they_o you_o have_v learn_v of_o your_o father_n to_o 64._o whet_v they_o like_o sword_n and_o to_o 1._o smite_v with_o they_o and_o to_o shoot_v forth_o your_o arrow_n even_o bitter_a word_n but_o the_o mouth_n that_o rage_v with_o lie_n &_o slander_n as_o the_o wise_a man_n forwarn_v destroy_v the_o soul_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n your_o error_n be_v nothing_o diminish_v or_o excuse_v by_o your_o taunt_n or_o teeth-gawles_a as_o touch_v the_o matter_n itself_o sacrament_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o by_o their_o first_o and_o chief_a erection_n be_v visible_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n so_o that_o if_o they_o be_v no_o sign_n they_o be_v no_o sacrament_n and_o though_o the_o sign_n must_v be_v diligent_o distinguish_v from_o the_o thing_n yet_o for_o good_a cause_n in_o teach_v and_o write_v do_v the_o sign_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o err_v who_o sign_n they_o be_v in_o so_o much_o that_o no_o father_n speak_v or_o write_v of_o the_o bread_n or_o wine_n after_o they_o be_v once_o make_v sacrament_n give_v they_o any_o other_o